Gulliver of
Mars
by Edwin L. Arnold
Original Title: Lieut. Gulliver Jones
CHAPTER I
Dare I say it? Dare I say that I, a plain, prosaic lieutenant in
the
republican service have done the incredible things here set out for
the
love of a woman--for a chimera in female shape; for a pale, vapid
ghost
of woman-loveliness? At times I tell myself I dare not: that you
will
laugh, and cast me aside as a fabricator; and then again I pick up
my
pen and collect the scattered pages, for I MUST write it--the
pallid
splendour of that thing I loved, and won, and lost is ever before
me,
and will not be forgotten. The tumult of the struggle into which
that
vision led me still throbs in my mind, the soft, lisping voices of
the
planet I ransacked for its sake and the roar of the destruction
which
followed me back from the quest drowns all other sounds in my
ears!
I must and will write--it relieves me; read and believe as you
list.
At the moment this story commences I was thinking of grilled steak
and
tomatoes--steak crisp and brown on both sides, and tomatoes red as
a
setting sun!
Much else though I have forgotten, THAT fact remains as clear as the
last
sight of a well-remembered shore in the mind of some
wave-tossed
traveller. And the occasion which produced that prosaic
thought was a
night well calculated to make one think of supper and fireside,
though
the one might be frugal and the other lonely, and as I, Gulliver
Jones,
the poor foresaid Navy lieutenant, with the honoured stars of our
Republic
on my collar, and an undeserved snub from those in authority
rankling in
my heart, picked my way homeward by a short cut through the
dismalness
of a New York slum I longed for steak and stout, slippers and a
pipe,
with all the pathetic keenness of a troubled soul.
It was a wild, black kind of night, and the weirdness of it showed up
as I
passed from light to light or crossed the mouths of dim alleys
leading Heaven
knows to what infernal dens of mystery and crime even
in this latter-day city
of ours. The moon was up as far as the church
steeples; large vapoury
clouds scudding across the sky between us and
her, and a strong, gusty wind,
laden with big raindrops snarled angrily
round corners and sighed in the
parapets like strange voices talking
about things not of human interest.
It made no difference to me, of course. New York in this year of
grace
is not the place for the supernatural be the time never so fit
for
witch-riding and the night wind in the chimney-stacks sound never
so
much like the last gurgling cries of throttled men. No! the world
was
very matter-of-fact, and particularly so to me, a poor younger son
with
five dollars in my purse by way of fortune, a packet of unpaid
bills
in my breastpocket, and round my neck a locket with a portrait
therein
of that dear buxom, freckled, stub-nosed girl away in a little
southern
seaport town whom I thought I loved with a magnificent
affection. Gods!
I had not even touched the fringe of that
affliction.
Thus sauntering along moodily, my chin on my chest and much too
absorbed
in reflection to have any nice appreciation of what was happening
about
me, I was crossing in front of a dilapidated block of houses,
dating
back nearly to the time of the Pilgrim Fathers, when I had a
vague
consciousness of something dark suddenly sweeping by me--a thing
like
a huge bat, or a solid shadow, if such a thing could be, and the
next
instant there was a thud and a bump, a bump again, a half-stifled
cry,
and then a hurried vision of some black carpeting that flapped and
shook
as though all the winds of Eblis were in its folds, and then
apparently
disgorged from its inmost recesses a little man.
Before my first start of half-amused surprise was over I saw him by
the
flickering lamp-light clutch at space as he tried to steady
himself,
stumble on the slippery curb, and the next moment go down on the
back
of his head with a most ugly thud.
Now I was not destitute of feeling, though it had been my lot to see
men
die in many ways, and I ran over to that motionless form without an
idea
that anything but an ordinary accident had occurred. There he lay,
silent
and, as it turned out afterwards, dead as a door-nail, the strangest
old
fellow ever eyes looked upon, dressed in shabby sorrel-coloured
clothes
of antique cut, with a long grey beard upon his chin, pent-roof
eyebrows,
and a wizened complexion so puckered and tanned by exposure to
Heaven
only knew what weathers that it was impossible to guess his
nationality.
I lifted him up out of the puddle of black blood in which he was
lying,
and his head dropped back over my arm as though it had been fixed
to
his body with string alone. There was neither heart-beat nor breath
in
him, and the last flicker of life faded out of that gaunt face even
as
I watched. It was not altogether a pleasant situation, and the only
thing
to do appeared to be to get the dead man into proper care (though
little
good it could do him now!) as speedily as possible. So,
sending a chance
passer-by into the main street for a cab, I placed him into
it as soon
as it came, and there being nobody else to go, got in with him
myself,
telling the driver at the same time to take us to the nearest
hospital.
"Is this your rug, captain?" asked a bystander just as we were
driving
off.
"Not mine," I answered somewhat roughly. "You don't suppose I
go
about at this time of night with Turkey carpets under my arm, do
you?
It belongs to this old chap here who has just dropped out of the
skies
on to his head; chuck it on top and shut the door!" And that
rug,
the very mainspring of the startling things which followed, was
thus
carelessly thrown on to the carriage, and off we went.
Well, to be brief, I handed in that stark old traveller from nowhere
at
the hospital, and as a matter of curiosity sat in the waiting-room
while
they examined him. In five minutes the house-surgeon on duty came
in
to see me, and with a shake of his head said briefly--
"Gone, sir--clean gone! Broke his neck like a pipe-stem.
Most
strange-looking man, and none of us can even guess at his age. Not
a
friend of yours, I suppose?"
"Nothing whatever to do with me, sir. He slipped on the pavement
and
fell in front of me just now, and as a matter of common charity I
brought
him in here. Were there any means of identification on
him?"
"None whatever," answered the doctor, taking out his notebook and,
as a
matter of form, writing down my name and address and a few brief
particulars,
"nothing whatever except this curious-looking bead hung
round his neck by a
blackened thong of leather," and he handed me a thing
about as big as a
filbert nut with a loop for suspension and apparently
of rock crystal, though
so begrimed and dull its nature was difficult to
speak of with
certainty. The bead was of no seeming value and slipped
unintentionally
into my waistcoat pocket as I chatted for a few minutes
more with the doctor,
and then, shaking hands, I said goodbye, and went
back to the cab which was
still waiting outside.
It was only on reaching home I noticed the hospital porters had omitted
to
take the dead man's carpet from the roof of the cab when they carried
him
in, and as the cabman did not care about driving back to the hospital
with
it, and it could not well be left in the street, I somewhat
reluctantly
carried it indoors with me.
Once in the shine of my own lamp and a cigar in my mouth I had a
closer
look at that ancient piece of art work from heaven, or the other
place,
only knows what ancient loom.
A big, strong rug of faded Oriental colouring, it covered half the
floor
of my sitting-room, the substance being of a material more like
camel's
hair than anything else, and running across, when examined
closely,
were some dark fibres so long and fine that surely they must have
come
from the tail of Solomon's favourite black stallion itself. But
the
strangest thing about that carpet was its pattern. It was
threadbare
enough to all conscience in places, yet the design still lived in
solemn,
age-wasted hues, and, as I dragged it to my stove-front and
spread
it out, it seemed to me that it was as much like a star map done by
a
scribe who had lately recovered from delirium tremens as anything
else.
In the centre appeared a round such as might be taken for the sun,
while
here and there, "in the field," as heralds say, were lesser orbs
which
from their size and position could represent smaller worlds
circling
about it. Between these orbs were dotted lines and arrow-heads
of the
oldest form pointing in all directions, while all the intervening
spaces
were filled up with woven characters half-way in appearance
between
Runes and Cryptic-Sanskrit. Round the borders these characters
ran into
a wild maze, a perfect jungle of an alphabet through which none but
a
wizard could have forced a way in search of meaning.
Altogether, I thought as I kicked it out straight upon my floor, it was
a
strange and not unhandsome article of furniture--it would do nicely
for the
mess-room on the Carolina, and if any representatives of yonder
poor old
fellow turned up tomorrow, why, I would give them a couple of
dollars for
it. Little did I guess how dear it would be at any price!
Meanwhile that steak was late, and now that the temporary excitement
of
the evening was wearing off I fell dull again. What a dark, sodden
world
it was that frowned in on me as I moved over to the window and
opened
it for the benefit of the cool air, and how the wind howled about
the
roof tops. How lonely I was! What a fool I had been to ask
for long
leave and come ashore like this, to curry favour with a set of
stubborn
dunderheads who cared nothing for me--or Polly, and could not or
would
not understand how important it was to the best interests of the
Service
that I should get that promotion which alone would send me back to
her
an eligible wooer! What a fool I was not to have volunteered for
some
desperate service instead of wasting time like this! Then at least
life
would have been interesting; now it was dull as ditch-water, with
wretched
vistas of stagnant waiting between now and that joyful day when I
could
claim that dear, rosy-checked girl for my own. What a fool I had
been!
"I wish, I wish," I exclaimed, walking round the little room, "I wish
I
were--"
While these unfinished exclamations were actually passing my lips
I
chanced to cross that infernal mat, and it is no more startling
than
true, but at my word a quiver of expectation ran through that
gaunt
web--a rustle of anticipation filled its ancient fabric, and one
frayed
corner surged up, and as I passed off its surface in my stride,
the
sentence still unfinished on my lips, wrapped itself about my left
leg
with extraordinary swiftness and so effectively that I nearly fell
into
the arms of my landlady, who opened the door at the moment and came
in
with a tray and the steak and tomatoes mentioned more than once
already.
It was the draught caused by the opening door, of course, that had
made
the dead man's rug lift so strangely--what else could it have been?
I
made this apology to the good woman, and when she had set the table
and
closed the door took another turn or two about my den, continuing
as I did so
my angry thoughts.
"Yes, yes," I said at last, returning to the stove and taking my
stand,
hands in pockets, in front of it, "anything were better than this,
any
enterprise however wild, any adventure however desperate. Oh, I
wish I
were anywhere but here, anywhere out of this redtape-ridden world of
ours!
I WISH I WERE IN THE PLANET MARS!"
How can I describe what followed those luckless words? Even as I
spoke
the magic carpet quivered responsively under my feet, and an
undulation
went all round the fringe as though a sudden wind were shaking
it.
It humped up in the middle so abruptly that I came down sitting with
a
shock that numbed me for the moment. It threw me on my back
and
billowed up round me as though I were in the trough of a stormy
sea.
Quicker than I can write it lapped a corner over and rolled me in
its
folds like a chrysalis in a cocoon. I gave a wild yell and made
one
frantic struggle, but it was too late. With the leathery strength
of a
giant and the swiftness of an accomplished cigar-roller covering a
"core"
with leaf, it swamped my efforts, straightened my limbs, rolled me
over,
lapped me in fold after fold till head and feet and everything
were
gone--crushed life and breath back into my innermost being, and
then,
with the last particle of consciousness, I felt myself lifted from
the
floor, pass once round the room, and finally shoot out, point
foremost,
into space through the open window, and go up and up and up with
a
sound of rending atmospheres that seemed to tear like riven silk in
one
prolonged shriek under my head, and to close up in thunder astern
until my
reeling senses could stand it no longer. and time and space
and
circumstances all lost their meaning to me.
CHAPTER II
How long that wild rush lasted I have no means of judging. It
may
have been an hour, a day, or many days, for I was throughout in
a
state of suspended animation, but presently my senses began to
return
and with them a sensation of lessening speed, a grateful relief to
a
heavy pressure which had held my life crushed in its grasp,
without
destroying it completely. It was just that sort of sensation
though
more keen which, drowsy in his bunk, a traveller feels when he is
aware,
without special perception, harbour is reached and a voyage comes
to
an end. But in my case the slowing down was for a long time
comparative.
Yet the sensation served to revive my scattered senses, and just
as I
was awakening to a lively sense of amazement, an incredible doubt of
my
own emotions, and an eager desire to know what had happened, my
strange
conveyance oscillated once or twice, undulated lightly up and down,
like
a woodpecker flying from tree to tree, and then grounded, bows
first,
rolled over several times, then steadied again, and, coming at last
to
rest, the next minute the infernal rug opened, quivering along all
its
borders in its peculiar way, and humping up in the middle shot me
five
feet into the air like a cat tossed from a schoolboy's blanket.
As I turned over I had a dim vision of a clear light like the shine
of
dawn, and solid ground sloping away below me. Upon that slope
was
ranged a crowd of squatting people, and a staid-looking individual
with
his back turned stood nearer by. Afterwards I found he was
lecturing
all those sitters on the ethics of gravity and the inherent
properties
of falling bodies; at the moment I only knew he was directly in my
line
as I descended, and him round the waist I seized, giddy with the
light
and fresh air, waltzed him down the slope with the force of my
impetus,
and, tripping at the bottom, rolled over and over recklessly with
him
sheer into the arms of the gaping crowd below. Over and over we
went
into the thickest mass of bodies, making a way through the people,
until
at last we came to a stop in a perfect mound of writhing forms and
waving
legs and arms. When we had done the mass disentangled itself and
I was
able to raise my head from the shoulder of someone on whom I had
fallen,
lifting him, or her--which was it?--into a sitting posture alongside
of
me at the same time, while the others rose about us like
wheat-stalks
after a storm, and edged shyly off, as well as they might.
Such a sleek, slim youth it was who sat up facing me, with a flush
of
gentle surprise on his face, and dapper hands that felt cautiously
about
his anatomy for injured places. He looked so quaintly rueful yet
withal
so good-tempered that I could not help bursting into laughter in
spite
of my own amazement. Then he laughed too, a sedate, musical
chuckle,
and said something incomprehensible, pointing at the same time to a
cut
upon my finger that was bleeding a little. I shook my head,
meaning
thereby that it was nothing, but the stranger with graceful
solicitude
took my hand, and, after examining the hurt, deliberately tore a
strip
of cloth from a bright yellow toga-like garment he was wearing and
bound
the place up with a woman's tenderness.
Meanwhile, as he ministered, there was time to look about me.
Where
was I? It was not the Broadway; it was not Staten Island on a
Saturday
afternoon. The night was just over, and the sun on the point
of rising.
Yet it was still shadowy all about, the air being marvellously
tepid
and pleasant to the senses. Quaint, soft aromas like the breath
of
a new world--the fragrance of unknown flowers, and the dewy scent
of
never-trodden fields drifted to my nostrils; and to my ears came a
sound
of laughter scarcely more human than the murmur of the wind in the
trees,
and a pretty undulating whisper as though a great concourse of
people
were talking softly in their sleep. I gazed about scarcely
knowing
how much of my senses or surroundings were real and how much
fanciful,
until I presently became aware the rosy twilight was broadening
into day,
and under the increasing shine a strange scene was fashioning
itself.
At first it was an opal sea I looked on of mist, shot along its
upper
surface with the rosy gold and pinks of dawn. Then, as that
soft,
translucent lake ebbed, jutting hills came through it, black and
crimson,
and as they seemed to mount into the air other lower hills
showed
through the veil with rounded forest knobs till at last the
brightening
day dispelled the mist, and as the rosy-coloured gauzy fragments
went
slowly floating away a wonderfully fair country lay at my feet,
with
a broad sea glimmering in many arms and bays in the distance
beyond.
It was all dim and unreal at first, the mountains shadowy, the
ocean
unreal, the flowery fields between it and me vacant and shadowy.
Yet were they vacant? As my eyes cleared and day brightened still
more,
and I turned my head this way and that, it presently dawned upon
me
all the meadow coppices and terraces northwards of where I lay,
all
that blue and spacious ground I had thought to be bare and vacant,
were
alive with a teeming city of booths and tents; now I came to look
more
closely there was a whole town upon the slope, built as might be in
a
night of boughs and branches still unwithered, the streets and ways
of
that city in the shadows thronged with expectant people moving in
groups
and shifting to and fro in lively streams--chatting at the stalls
and
clustering round the tent doors in soft, gauzy, parti-coloured
crowds
in a way both fascinating and perplexing.
I stared about me like a child at its first pantomime, dimly
understanding
all I saw was novel, but more allured to the colour and life of
the
picture than concerned with its exact meaning; and while I stared
and
turned my finger was bandaged, and my new friend had been lisping
away to me
without getting anything in turn but a shake of the head.
This made him
thoughtful, and thereon followed a curious incident which
I cannot
explain. I doubt even whether you will believe it; but what
am I to do
in that case? You have already accepted the episode of my
coming, or
you would have shut the covers before arriving at this page
of my modest
narrative, and this emboldens me. I may strengthen my
claim on your
credulity by pointing out the extraordinary marvels which
science is teaching
you even on our own little world. To quote a single
instance: If any
one had declared ten years ago that it would shortly
be practicable and easy
for two persons to converse from shore to shore
across the Atlantic without
any intervening medium, he would have been
laughed at as a possibly amusing
but certainly extravagant romancer.
Yet that picturesque lie of yesterday is
amongst the accomplished facts
of today! Therefore I am encouraged to
ask your indulgence, in the name
of your previous errors, for the following
and any other instances in
which I may appear to trifle with strict
veracity. There is no such
thing as the impossible in our universe!
When my friendly companion found I could not understand him, he
looked
serious for a minute or two, then shortened his brilliant yellow
toga,
as though he had arrived at some resolve, and knelt down directly
in
front of me. He next took my face between his hands, and putting his
nose
within an inch of mine, stared into my eyes with all his might. At
first
I was inclined to laugh, but before long the most curious sensations
took
hold of me. They commenced with a thrill which passed all up my
body,
and next all feeling save the consciousness of the loud beating of
my
heart ceased. Then it seemed that boy's eyes were inside my head and
not
outside, while along with them an intangible something pervaded my
brain.
The sensation at first was like the application of ether to the
skin--a
cool, numbing emotion. It was followed by a curious tingling
feeling,
as some dormant cells in my mind answered to the thought-transfer,
and
were filled and fertilised! My other brain-cells most distinctly
felt
the vitalising of their companions, and for about a minute I
experienced
extreme nausea and a headache such as comes from over-study,
though both
passed swiftly off. I presume that in the future we shall
all obtain
knowledge in this way. The Professors of a later day will
perhaps keep
shops for the sale of miscellaneous information, and we shall
drop in
and be inflated with learning just as the bicyclist gets his tire
pumped
up, or the motorist is recharged with electricity at so much per
unit.
Examinations will then become matters of capacity in the real
meaning
of that word, and we shall be tempted to invest our pocket-money
by
advertisements of "A cheap line in Astrology," "Try our
double-strength,
two-minute course of Classics," "This is remnant day for
Trigonometry
and Metaphysics," and so on.
My friend did not get as far as that. With him the process did not
take
more than a minute, but it was startling in its results, and reduced
me
to an extraordinary state of hypnotic receptibility. When it was
over
my instructor tapped with a finger on my lips, uttering aloud as he
did
so the words--
"Know none; know some; know little; know morel" again and again; and
the
strangest part of it is that as he spoke I did know at first a
little,
then more, and still more, by swift accumulation, of his speech
and
meaning. In fact, when presently he suddenly laid a hand over my
eyes
and then let go of my head with a pleasantly put question as to how
I
felt, I had no difficulty whatever in answering him in his own
tongue,
and rose from the ground as one gets from a hair-dresser's chair,
with
a vague idea of looking round for my hat and offering him his fee.
"My word, sir!" I said, in lisping Martian, as I pulled down my cuffs
and
put my cravat straight, "that was a quick process. I once heard of
a
man who learnt a language in the moments he gave each day to having
his boots
blacked; but this beats all. I trust I was a docile pupil?"
"Oh, fairly, sir," answered the soft, musical voice of the strange
being
by me; "but your head is thick and your brain tough. I could have
taught
another in half the time."
"Curiously enough," was my response, "those are almost the very words
with
which my dear old tutor dismissed me the morning I left college.
Never mind,
the thing is done. Shall I pay you anything?"
"I do not understand."
"Any honorarium, then? Some people understand one word and not
the
other." But the boy only shook his head in answer.
Strangely enough, I was not greatly surprised all this time either
at the
novelty of my whereabouts or at the hypnotic instruction in a
new language
just received. Perhaps it was because my head still spun
too giddily
with that flight in the old rug for much thought; perhaps
because I did not
yet fully realise the thing that had happened. But,
anyhow, there is
the fact, which, like so many others in my narrative,
must, alas! remain
unexplained for the moment. The rug, by the way, had
completely
disappeared, my friend comforting me on this score, however,
by saying he had
seen it rolled up and taken away by one whom he knew.
"We are very tidy people here, stranger," he said, "and everything
found
Lying about goes back to the Palace store-rooms. You will laugh
to see
the lumber there, for few of us ever take the trouble to reclaim
our
property."
Heaven knows I was in no laughing mood when I saw that enchanted
web
again!
When I had lain and watched the brightening scene for a time, I got
up,
and having stretched and shaken my clothes into some sort of order,
we
strolled down the hill and joined the light-hearted crowds that
twined
across the plain and through the streets of their city of
booths.
They were the prettiest, daintiest folk ever eyes looked
upon,
well-formed and like to us as could be in the main, but slender
and
willowy, so dainty and light, both the men and the women, so pretty
of
cheek and hair, so mild of aspect, I felt, as I strode amongst them,
I
could have plucked them like flowers and bound them up in bunches
with
my belt. And yet somehow I liked them from the first minute; such
a
happy, careless, light-hearted race, again I say, never was seen
before.
There was not a stain of thought or care on a single one of those
white
foreheads that eddied round me under their peaked, blossom-like
caps,
the perpetual smile their faces wore never suffered rebuke
anywhere;
their very movements were graceful and slow, their laughter was low
and
musical, there was an odour of friendly, slothful happiness about
them
that made me admire whether I would or no.
Unfortunately I was not able to live on laughter, as they appeared to
be,
so presently turning to my acquaintance, who had told me his name
was the
plain monosyllabic An, and clapping my hand on his shoulder
as he stood lost
in sleepy reflection, said, in a good, hearty way,
"Hullo, friend
Yellow-jerkin! If a stranger might set himself athwart
the cheerful
current of your meditations, may such a one ask how far
'tis to the nearest
wine-shop or a booth where a thirsty man may get a
mug of ale at a moderate
reckoning?"
That gilded youth staggered under my friendly blow as though the hammer
of
Thor himself had suddenly lit upon his shoulder, and ruefully rubbing
his
tender skin, he turned on me mild, handsome eyes, answering after a
moment,
during which his native mildness struggled with the pain I had
unwittingly
given him--
"If your thirst be as emphatic as your greeting, friend Heavy-fist,
it
will certainly be a kindly deed to lead you to the drinking-place.
My
shoulder tingles with your good-fellowship," he added, keeping
two
arms'-lengths clear of me. "Do you wish," he said, "merely to
cleanse
a dusty throat, or for blue or pink oblivion?"
"Why," I answered laughingly, "I have come a longish journey
since
yesterday night--a journey out of count of all reasonable
mileage--and
I might fairly plead a dusty throat as excuse for a beginning;
but as
to the other things mentioned, those tinted forgetfulnesses, I do
not
even know what you mean."
"Undoubtedly you are a stranger," said the friendly youth, eyeing me
from
top to toe with renewed wonder, "and by your unknown garb one from
afar."
"From how far no man can say--not even I--but from very far, in truth.
Let
that stay your curiosity for the time. And now to bench and ale-mug,
on
good fellow!--the shortest way. I was never so thirsty as this
since
our water-butts went overboard when I sailed the southern seas as
a
tramp apprentice, and for three days we had to damp our black
tongues
with the puddles the night-dews left in the lift of our
mainsail."
Without more words, being a little awed of me, I thought, the boy led
me
through the good-humoured crowd to where, facing the main road to the
town,
but a little sheltered by a thicket of trees covered with gigantic
pink
blossoms, stood a drinking-place--a cluster of tables set round an
open
grass-plot. Here he brought me a platter of some light
inefficient
cakes which merely served to make hunger more self-conscious, and
some
fine aromatic wine contained in a triple-bodied flask, each
division
containing vintage of a separate hue. We broke our biscuits,
sipped
that mysterious wine, and talked of many things until at last
something
set us on the subject of astronomy, a study I found my dapper
gallant
had some knowledge of--which was not to be wondered at seeing he
dwelt
under skies each night set thick above his curly head with tawny
planets,
and glittering constellations sprinkled through space like flowers
in
May meadows. He knew what worlds went round the sun, larger or
lesser,
and seeing this I began to question him, for I was uneasy in my
innermost
mind and, you will remember, so far had no certain knowledge of
where
I was, only a dim, restless suspicion that I had come beyond the ken
of
all men's knowledge.
Therefore, sweeping clear the board with my sleeve, and breaking the
wafer
cake I was eating, I set down one central piece for the sun, and,
"See here!"
I said, "good fellow! This morsel shall stand for that sun
you have
just been welcoming back with quaint ritual. Now stretch your
starry
knowledge to the utmost, and put down that tankard for a moment.
If this be
yonder sun and this lesser crumb be the outermost one of our
revolving
system, and this the next within, and this the next, and so on;
now if this
be so tell me which of these fragmentary orbs is ours--which
of all these
crumbs from the hand of the primordial would be that we
stand upon?"
And I waited with an anxiety a light manner thinly hid,
to hear his
answer.
It came at once. Laughing as though the question were too
trivial,
and more to humour my wayward fancy than aught else, that boy
circled
his rosy thumb about a minute and brought it down on the planet
Mars!
I started and stared at him; then all of a tremble cried, "You trifle
with
me! Choose again--there, see, I will set the symbols and name them
to
you anew. There now, on your soul tell me truly which this planet
is,
the one here at our feet?" And again the boy shook his head,
wondering at
my eagerness, and pointed to Mars, saying gently as he did so
the fact was
certain as the day above us, nothing was marvellous but my
questioning.
Mars! oh, dreadful, tremendous, unexpected! With a cry of
affright,
and bringing my fist down on the table till all the cups upon it
leapt,
I told him he lied--lied like a simpleton whose astronomy was as
rotten
as his wit--smote the table and scowled at him for a spell, then
turned
away and let my chin fall upon my breast and my hands upon my lap.
And yet, and yet, it might be so! Everything about me was new
and
strange, the crisp, thin air I breathed was new; the lukewarm
sunshine
new; the sleek, long, ivory faces of the people new!
Yesterday--was it
yesterday?--I was back there--away in a world that pines to
know of other
worlds, and one fantastic wish of mine, backed by a hideous,
infernal
chance, had swung back the doors of space and shot me--if that boy
spoke
true--into the outer void where never living man had been before:
all
my wits about me, all the horrible bathos of my earthly clothing on
me,
all my terrestrial hungers in my veins!
I sprang to my feet and swept my hands across my eyes. Was that a
dream,
or this? No, no, both were too real. The hum of my faraway
city still
rang in my ears: a swift vision of the girl I had loved; of the
men I
had hated; of the things I had hoped for rose before me, still
dazing
my inner eye. And these about me were real people, too; it was
real
earth; real skies, trees, and rocks--had the infernal gods indeed
heard,
I asked myself, the foolish wish that started from my lips in a moment
of
fierce discontent, and swept me into another sphere, another
existence?
I looked at the boy as though he could answer that question, but
there
was nothing in his face but vacuous wonder; I clapped my hands
together
and beat my breast; it was true; my soul within me said it was
true;
the boy had not lied; the djins had heard; I was just in the flesh
I
had; my common human hungers still unsatisfied where never mortal
man
had hungered before; and scarcely knowing whether I feared or
not,
whether to laugh or cry, but with all the wonder and terror of
that
great remove sweeping suddenly upon me I staggered back to my
seat,
and dropping my arms upon the table, leant my head heavily upon
them
and strove to choke back the passion which beset me.
CHAPTER III
It was the light touch of the boy An upon my shoulder which roused me.
He
was bending down, his pretty face full of concernful sympathy, and
in a
minute said--knowing nothing of my thoughts, of course,
"It is the wine, stranger, the pink oblivion, it sometimes makes one
feel
like that until enough is taken; you stopped just short of what you
should
have had, and the next cup would have been delight--I should have
told
you."
"Ay," I answered, glad he should think so, "it was the wine, no
doubt;
your quaint drink, sir, tangled up my senses for the moment, but
they
are clearer now, and I am eager past expression to learn a little
more
of this strange country I have wandered into."
"I would rather," said the boy, relapsing again into his state of
kindly
lethargy, "that you learnt things as you went, for talking is
work,
and work we hate, but today we are all new and fresh, and if ever
you
are to ask questions now is certainly the time. Come with me to
the
city yonder, and as we go I will answer the things you wish to
know;"
and I went with him, for I was humble and amazed, and, in truth, at
that
moment, had not a word to say for myself.
All the way from the plain where I had awoke to the walls of the
city
stood booths, drinking-places, and gardens divided by labyrinths
of
canals, and embowered in shrubberies that seemed coming into leaf
and
flower as we looked, so swift was the process of their growth.
These
waterways were covered with skiffs being pushed and rowed in every
direction;
the cheerful rowers calling to each other through the leafy
screens
separating one lane from another till the place was full of their
happy
chirruping. Every booth and way-side halting-place was thronged
with
these delicate and sprightly people, so friendly, so gracious,
and withal so
purposeless.
I began to think we should never reach the town itself, for first my
guide
would sit down on a green stream-bank, his feet a-dangle in the
clear water,
and bandy wit with a passing boat as though there were
nothing else in the
world to think of. And when I dragged him out of
that, whispering in
his ear, "The town, my dear boy! the town! I am
all agape to see it,"
he would saunter reluctantly to a booth a hundred
yards further on and fall
to eating strange confections or sipping
coloured wines with chance
acquaintances, till again I plucked him by
the sleeve and said: "Seth, good
comrade--was it not so you called your
city just now?--take me to the gates,
and I will be grateful to you,"
then on again down a flowery lane, aimless
and happy, wasting my time
and his, with placid civility I was led by that
simple guide.
Wherever we went the people stared at me, as well they might, as I
walked
through them overtopping the tallest by a head or more. The
drinking-cups
paused half-way to their mouths; the jests died away upon their
lips;
and the blinking eyes of the drinkers shone with a momentary sparkle
of
wonder as their minds reeled down those many-tinted floods to the
realms
of oblivion they loved.
I heard men whisper one to another, "Who is he?"; "Whence does he
come?";
"Is he a tribute-taker?" as I strolled amongst them, my mind still
so
thrilled with doubt and wonder that to me they seemed hardly more
than
painted puppets, the vistas of their lovely glades and the ivory
town
beyond only the fancy of a dream, and their talk as incontinent as
the
babble of a stream.
Then happily, as I walked along with bent head brooding over
the
incredible thing that had happened, my companion's shapely legs gave
out,
and with a sigh of fatigue he suggested we should take a skiff
amongst
the many lying about upon the margins and sail towards the town,
"For,"
said he, "the breeze blows thitherward, and 'tis a shame to use
one's
limbs when Nature will carry us for nothing!"
"But have you a boat of your own hereabouts?" I queried; "for to tell
the
truth I came from home myself somewhat poorly provided with means
to buy or
barter, and if your purse be not heavier than mine we must
still do as poor
men do."
"Oh!" said An, "there is no need to think of that, no one here to hire
or
hire of; we will just take the first skiff we see that suits us."
"And what if the owner should come along and find his boat gone?"
"Why, what should he do but take the next along the bank, and the
master
of that the next again--how else could it be?" said the Martian,
and
shrugging my shoulders, for I was in no great mood to argue, we
went
down to the waterway, through a thicket of budding trees underlaid
with
a carpet of small red flowers filling the air with a scent of honey,
and
soon found a diminutive craft pulled up on the bank. There were
some
dainty cloaks and wraps in it which An took out and laid under a
tree.
But first he felt in the pouch of one for a sweetmeat which his
fine
nostrils, acute as a squirrel's, told him was there, and taking the
lump
out bit a piece from it, afterwards replacing it in the owner's
pocket
with the frankest simplicity.
Then we pushed off, hoisted the slender mast, set the smallest
lug-sail
that ever a sailor smiled at, and, myself at the helm, and that
golden
youth amidships, away we drifted under thickets of drooping
canes
tasselled with yellow catkin-flowers, up the blue alley of the water
into
the broader open river beyond with its rapid flow and crowding
boats,
the white city front now towering clear before us.
The air was full of sunshine and merry voices; birds were singing,
trees
were budding; only my heart was heavy, my mind confused. Yet why
should
I be sad, I said to myself presently? Life beat in my pulses;
what had
I to fear? This world I had tumbled into was new and strange,
no doubt,
but tomorrow it would be old and familiar; it discredited my
manhood to sit
brow-bent like that, so with an effort I roused myself.
"Old chap!" I said to my companion, as he sat astride of a thwart
slowly
chewing something sticky and eyeing me out of the corner of
his eyes with
vapid wonder, "tell me something of this land of yours,
or something about
yourself--which reminds me I have a question to ask.
It is a bit delicate,
but you look a sensible sort of fellow, and will
take no offence. The
fact is, I have noticed as we came along half your
population dresses in all
the colours of the rainbow--'fancy suitings'
our tailors could call it at
home--and this half of the census are
undoubtedly men and women. The
rub is that the other half, to which you
belong, all dress alike in YELLOW,
and I will be fired from the biggest
gun on the Carolina's main deck if I can
tell what sex you belong to!
I took you for a boy in the beginning, and the
way you closed with the
idea of having a drink with me seemed to show I was
dead on the right
course. Then a little later on I heard you and a
friend abusing our
sex from an outside point of view in a way which was very
disconcerting.
This, and some other things, have set me all abroad again, and
as fate
seems determined to make us chums for this voyage--why--well,
frankly,
I should be glad to know if you be boy or girl? If you are as
I am,
no more nor less then--for I like you--there's my hand in
comradeship.
If you are otherwise, as those sleek outlines seem to
promise--why,
here's my hand again! But man or woman you must be--come,
which is it?"
If I had been perplexed before, to watch that boy now was more
curious
than ever. He drew back from me with a show of wounded dignity,
then
bit his lips, and sighed, and stared, and frowned. "Come," I
said
laughingly, "speak! it engenders ambiguity to be so ambiguous of
gender!
'Tis no great matter, yes or no, a plain answer will set us fairly
in
our friendship; if it is comrade, then comrade let it be; if maid,
why,
I shall not quarrel with that, though it cost me a likely messmate."
"You mock me."
"Not I, I never mocked any one."
"And does my robe tell you nothing?"
"Nothing so much; a yellow tunic and becoming enough, but nothing about
it
to hang a deduction on. Come! Are you a girl, after all?"
"I do not count myself a girl."
"Why, then, you are the most blooming boy that ever eyes were set
upon;
and though 'tis with some tinge of regret, yet cheerfully I welcome
you
into the ranks of manhood."
"I hate your manhood, send it after the maidhood; it fits me just
as
badly."
"But An, be reasonable; man or maid you must be."
"Must be; why?"
"Why?" Was ever such a question put to a sane mortal before? I
stared
at that ambiguous thing before me, and then, a little wroth to be
played
with, growled out something about Martians being all drunk or mad.
"'Tis you yourself are one or other," said that individual, by this
time
pink with anger, "and if you think because I am what I am you can
safely
taunt me, you are wrong. See! I have a sting," and like a
thwarted
child my companion half drew from the folds of the yellow
tunic-dress
the daintiest, most harmless-looking little dagger that was ever
seen.
"Oh, if it comes to that," I answered, touching the Navy scabbard
still at
my hip, and regaining my temper at the sight of hers, "why,
I have a sting
also--and twice as long as yours! But in truth, An,
let us not talk of
these things; if something in what I have said has
offended nice Martian
scruples I am sorry, and will question no more,
leaving my wonder for time to
settle."
"No," said the other, "it was my fault to be hasty of offence; I am not
so
angered once a year. But in truth your question moves us yellow
robes
deeply. Did you not really know that we who wear this saffron
tunic are
slaves,--a race apart, despised by all."
"'Slaves,' no; how should I know it?"
"I thought you must understand a thing so fundamental, and it was
that
thought which made your questions seem unkind. But if indeed you
have
come so far as not to understand even this, then let me tell you
once
we of this garb were women--priestesses of the immaculate conceptions
of
humanity; guardians of those great hopes and longings which die so
easily.
And because we forgot our high station and took to aping another
sex
the gods deserted and men despised us, giving us, in the fierceness
of
their contempt, what we asked for. We are the slave ants of the
nest,
the work-bees of the hive, come, in truth, of those here who still
be
men and women of a sort, but toilers only; unknown in love,
unregretted
in death--those who dangle all children but their own--slaves
cursed
with the accomplishment of their own ambition."
There was no doubt poor An believed what she said, for her attitude
was
one of extreme dejection while she spoke, and to cheer her I laughed.
"Oh! come, it can't be as bad as that. Surely sometimes some of
you
win back to womanhood? You yourself do not look so far gone but
what
some deed of abnegation, some strong love if you could but
conceive
it would set you right again. Surely you of the primrose robes
can
sometimes love?"
Whereat unwittingly I troubled the waters in the placid soul of
that
outcast Martian! I cannot exactly describe how it was, but she
bent her
head silently for a moment or two, and then, with a sigh, lifting
her
eyes suddenly to mine, said quietly, "Yes, sometimes;
sometimes--but
very seldom," while for an instant across her face there
flashed the
summer lightning of a new hope, a single transient glance of
wistful,
timid entreaty; of wonder and delight that dared not even yet
acknowledge
itself.
Then it was my turn to sit silent, and the pause was so awkward that in
a
minute, to break it, I exclaimed--
"Let's drop personalities, old chap--I mean my dear Miss An. Tell
me
something about your people, and let us begin properly at the top:
have
you got a king, for instance?"
To this the girl, pulling herself out of the pleasant slough of
her
listlessness, and falling into my vein, answered--
"Both yes and no, sir traveller from afar--no chiefly, and yet
perhaps
yes. If it were no then it were so, and if yes then Hath were
our king."
"A mild king I should judge by your uncertainty. In the place
where
I came from kings press their individualities somewhat more clearly
on
their subjects' minds. Is Hath here in the city? Does he come
to your
feasts today?"
An nodded. Hath was on the river, he had been to see the sunrise;
even
now she thought the laughter and singing down behind the bend might
be
the king's barge coming up citywards. "He will not be late," said
my
companion, "because the marriage-feast is set for tomorrow in the
palace."
I became interested. Kings, palaces, marriage-feasts--why, here
was
something substantial to go upon; after all these gauzy folk might
turn
out good fellows, jolly comrades to sojourn amongst--and
marriage-feasts
reminded me again I was hungry.
"Who is it," I asked, with more interest in my tone, "who
gets
married?--is it your ambiguous king himself?"
Whereat An's purple eyes broadened with wonder: then as though she
would
not be uncivil she checked herself, and answered with smothered
pity
for my ignorance, "Not only Hath himself, but every one, stranger,
they
are all married tomorrow; you would not have them married one at a
time,
would you?"--this with inexpressible derision.
I said, with humility, something like that happened in the place I
came
from, asking her how it chanced the convenience of so many came to
one
climax at the same moment. "Surely, An, this is a marvel of
arrangement.
Where I dwelt wooings would sometimes be long or sometimes
short, and
all maids were not complacent by such universal agreement."
The girl was clearly perplexed. She stared at me a space, then
said,
"What have wooings long or short to do with weddings? You talk as
if
you did your wooing first and then came to marriage--we get
married
first and woo afterwards!"
"'Tis not a bad idea, and I can see it might lend an ease and certainty
to
the pastime which our method lacks. But if the woman is got first
and
sued subsequently, who brings you together? Who sees to the
essential
preliminaries of assortment?"
An, looking at my shoes as though she speculated on the remoteness of
the
journey I had come if it were measured by my ignorance, replied,
"The urn,
stranger, the urn does that--what else? How it may be in
that
out-fashioned region you have come from I cannot tell, but here--'tis
so
commonplace I should have thought you must have known it--we put
each
new year the names of all womenkind into an urn and the men draw
for
them, each town, each village by itself, and those they draw are
theirs;
is it conceivable your race has other methods?"
I told her it was so--we picked and chose for ourselves, beseeching
the
damsels, fighting for them, and holding the sun of romance was at
its
setting just where the Martians held it to rise. Whereat An burst
out
laughing--a clear, ringing laugh that set all the light-hearted folk
in
the nearest boats laughing in sympathy. But when the grotesqueness
of
the idea had somewhat worn off, she turned grave and asked me if such
a
fancy did not lead to spite, envy, and bickerings. "Why, it seems
to
me," she said, shaking her curly head, "such a plan might fire
cities,
desolate plains, and empty palaces--"
"Such things have been."
"Ah! our way is much the better. See!" quoth that gentle
philosopher.
"'Here,' one of our women would say, 'am I to-day, unwed, as
free of
thought as yonder bird chasing the catkin down; tomorrow I shall
be
married, with a whole summer to make love in, relieved at one bound
of
all those uncertainties you acknowledge to, with nothing to do but
lie
about on sunny banks with him whom chance sends me, come to the goal
of
love without any travelling to get there.' Why, you must
acknowledge
this is the perfection of ease."
"But supposing," I said, "chance dealt unkindly to you from your
nuptial
urn, supposing the man was not to your liking, or another coveted
him?"
To which An answered, with some shrewdness--
"In the first case we should do what we might, being no worse off
than
those in your land who had played ill providence to themselves. In
the
second, no maid would covet him whom fate had given to another, it
were
too fatiguing, or if such a thing DID happen, then one of them
would
waive his claims, for no man or woman ever born was worth a
wrangle,
and it is allowed us to barter and change a little."
All this was strange enough. I could not but laugh, while An
laughed
at the lightest invitation, and thus chatting and deriding each
other's
social arrangements we floated idly townwards and presently came
out
into the main waterway perhaps a mile wide and flowing rapidly,
as
streams will on the threshold of the spring, with brash or waste
of
distant beaches riding down it, and every now and then a broken
branch
or tree-stem glancing through waves whose crests a fresh wind lifted
and
sowed in golden showers in the intervening furrows. The Martians
seemed
expert upon the water, steering nimbly between these floating
dangers
when they met them, but for the most part hugging the shore where a
more
placid stream better suited their fancies, and for a time all went
well.
An, as we went along, was telling me more of her strange country,
pointing
out birds or flowers and naming them to me. "Now that," she
said,
pointing to a small grey owl who sat reflective on a floating log
we were
approaching--"that is a bird of omen; cover your face and look
away, for it
is not well to watch it."
Whereat I laughed. "Oh!" I answered, "so those ancient follies have
come
as far as this, have they? But it is no bird grey or black or
white that
can frighten folk where I come from; see, I will ruffle his
philosophy
for him," and suiting the action to the words I lifted a pebble
that
happened to lie at the bottom of the boat and flung it at that
creature
with the melancholy eyes. Away went the owl, dipping his wings
into
the water at every stroke, and as he went wailing out a ghostly
cry,
which even amongst sunshine and glitter made one's flesh creep.
An shook her head. "You should not have done that," she said;
"our
dead whom we send down over the falls come back in the body of
yonder
little bird. But he has gone now," she added, with relief; "see,
he
settles far up stream upon the point of yonder rotten bough; I
would
not disturb him again if I were you--"
Whatever more An would have said was lost, for amidst a sound of
flutes
and singing round the bend of the river below came a crowd of
boats
decked with flowers and garlands, all clustering round a barge
barely
able to move, so thick those lesser skiffs pressed upon it. So
close
those wherries hung about that the garlanded rowers who sat at the
oars
could scarcely pull, but, here as everywhere, it was the same good
temper,
the same carelessness of order, as like a flowery island in the
dancing
blue water the motley fleet came up.
I steered our skiff a space out from the bank to get a better view,
while
An clapped her hands together and laughed. "It is Hath--he
himself and
those of the palace with him. Steer a little nearer still,
friend--so!
between yon floating rubbish flats, for those with Hath are
good to look
at."
Nothing loth I made out into mid-stream to see that strange prince go
by,
little thinking in a few minutes I should be shaking hands with him,
a
wet and dripping hero. The crowd came up, and having the advantage
of
the wind, it did not take me long to get a front place in the ruck,
whence I
set to work, with republican interest in royalty, to stare at
the man who An
said was the head of Martian society. He did not make
me desire to
renounce my democratic principles. The royal fellow was
sitting in the
centre of the barge under a canopy and on a throne which
was a mass of
flowers, not bunched together as they would have been
with us, but so
cunningly arranged that they rose from the footstool
to the pinnacle in a
rhythm of colour, a poem in bud and petals the
like of which for harmonious
beauty I could not have imagined possible.
And in this fairy den was a thin,
gaunt young man, dressed in some sort of
black stuff so nondescript that it
amounted to little more than a shadow.
I took it for granted that a substance
of bone and muscle was covered by
that gloomy suit, but it was the face above
that alone riveted my gaze
and made me return the stare he gave me as we came
up with redoubled
interest. It was not an unhandsome face, but ashy
grey in colour and
amongst the insipid countenances of the Martians about him
marvellously
thoughtful. I do not know whether those who had killed
themselves by
learning ever leave ghosts behind, but if so this was the very
ideal for
such a one. At his feet I noticed, when I unhooked my eyes
from his at
last, sat a girl in a loose coral pink gown who was his very
antipode.
Princess Heru, for so she was called, was resting one arm upon his
knee
at our approach and pulling a blue convolvulus bud to pieces--a
charming
picture of dainty idleness. Anything so soft, so silken as
that little
lady was never seen before. Who am I, a poor quarter-deck
loafer,
that I should attempt to describe what poet and painter alike
would
have failed to realise? I know, of course, your stock
descriptives:
the melting eye, the coral lip, the peachy cheek, the raven
tress;
but these were coined for mortal woman--and this was not one of
them.
I will not attempt to describe the glorious tenderness of those eyes
she
turned upon me presently; the glowing radiance of her skin; the
infinite
grace of every action; the incredible soul-searching harmony of her
voice,
when later on I heard it--you must gather something of these things
as
I go--suffice it to say that when I saw her there for the first time
in
the plenitude of her beauty I fell desperately, wildly in love with
her.
Meanwhile, even the most infatuated of mortals cannot stare for
ever
without saying something. The grating of our prow against the
garlanded
side of the royal barge roused me from my reverie, and nodding to
An, to
imply I would be back presently, I lightly jumped on to Hath's
vessel,
and, with the assurance of a free and independent American
voter,
approached that individual, holding out my palm, and saying as I did
so,
"Shake hands, Mr. President!"
The prince came forward at my bidding and extending his hand for mine.
He
bowed slow and sedately, in that peculiar way the Martians have,
a ripple of
gratified civility passing up his flesh; lower and lower he
bowed, until his
face was over our clasped hands, and then, with simple
courtesy, he kissed my
finger-tips! This was somewhat embarrassing.
It was not like the
procedure followed in Courts nearer to Washington
than this one, as far as my
reading went, and, withdrawing my fingers
hastily, I turned to the princess,
who had risen, and was eyeing her
somewhat awkwardly, the while wondering
what kind of salutation would
be suitable in her case when a startling
incident happened. The river,
as said, was full of floating rubbish
brought down from some far-away
uplands by a spring freshet while the royal
convoy was making slow
progress upstream and thus met it all bow on.
Some of this stuff was
heavy timber, and when a sudden warning cry went up
from the leading
boats it did not take my sailor instinct long to guess what
was amiss.
Those in front shot side to side, those behind tried to drop back
as,
bearing straight down on the royal barge, there came a log of black
wood
twenty feet long and as thick as the mainmast of an old
three-decker.
Hath's boat could no more escape than if it had been planted on a
rocky
pedestal, garlands and curtains trailing in the water hung so
heavy
on it. The gilded paddles of the slender rowers were so
feeble--they
had but made a half-turn from that great javelin's road when
down it
came upon them, knocking the first few pretty oarsmen head over
heels
and crackling through their oars like a bull through dry maize
stalks.
I sprang forward, and snatching a pole from a half-hearted slave,
jammed
the end into the head of the log and bore with all my weight upon
it,
diverting it a little, and thereby perhaps saving the ship herself,
but
not enough. As it flashed by a branch caught upon the trailing
tapestry,
hurling me to the deck, and tearing away with it all that
finery.
Then the great spar, tossing half its dripping length into the air,
went
plunging downstream with shreds of silk and flowers trailing from
it,
and white water bubbling in its rear.
When I scrambled to my feet all was ludicrous confusion on board.
Hath
still stood by his throne--an island in a sea of disorder--staring
at me; all
else was chaos. The rowers and courtiers were kicking and
wallowing in
the "waist" of the ship like fish newly shot out of a trawl
net, but the
princess was gone. Where was she? I brushed the spray from
my
eyes, and stared overboard. She was not in the bubbling blue
water
alongside. Then I glanced aft to where the log, now fifteen yards
away,
was splashing through the sunshine, and, as I looked, a fair arm
came
up from underneath and white fingers clutched convulsively at the
sky.
What man could need more? Down the barge I rushed, and dropping
only my
swordbelt, leapt in to her rescue. The gentle Martians were too
numb to
raise a hand in help; but it was not necessary. I had the tide
with me,
and gained at every stroke. Meanwhile that accursed tree, with
poor
Heru's skirts caught on a branch, was drowning her at its
leisure;
lifting her up as it rose upon the crests, a fair, helpless
bundle,
and then sousing her in its fall into the nether water, where I
could
see her gleam now and again like pink coral.
I redoubled my efforts and got alongside, clutching the rind of that
old
stump, and swimming and scrambling, at last was within reach of
the
princess. Thereon the log lifted her playfully to my arms, and
when I
had laid hold came down, a crushing weight, and forced us far
into the clammy
bosom of Martian sea. Again we came up, coughing and
choking--I tugging
furiously at that tangled raiment, and the lady, a
mere lump of sweetness in
my other arm--then down again with that log
upon me and all the noises of
Eblis in my ears. Up and down we went,
over and over, till strength was
spent and my ribs seemed breaking;
then, with a last desperate effort, I got
a knee against the stem, and
by sheer strength freed my princess--the
spiteful timber made a last
ugly thrust at us as it rolled away--and we were
free!
I turned upon my back, and, sure of rescue now, took the lady's head
upon
my chest, holding her sweet, white fists in mine the while, and,
floating,
waited for help.
It came only too quickly. The gallant Martians, when they saw
the
princess saved, came swiftly down upon us. Over the lapping of the
water
in my ears I heard their sigh--like cries of admiration and
surprise,
the rattle of spray on the canoe sides mingled with the splash of
oars,
the flitting shadows of their prows were all about us, and in less
time
than it takes to write we were hauled aboard, revived, and taken
to
Hath's barge. Again the prince's lips were on my fingertips; again
the
flutes and music struck up; and as I squeezed the water out of my
hair,
and tried to keep my eyes off the outline of Heru, whose loveliness
shone
through her damp, clinging, pink robe, as if that robe were but a
gauzy
fancy, I vaguely heard Hath saying wondrous things of my gallantry,
and,
what was more to the purpose, asking me to come with him and stay
that
night at the palace.
CHAPTER IV
They lodged me like a prince in a tributary country that first night.
I
was tired. 'Twas a stiff stage I had come the day before, and they
gave
me a couch whose ethereal softness seemed to close like the wings
of a bird
as I plunged at its touch into fathomless slumbers. But the
next day
had hardly broken when I was awake, and, stretching my limbs
upon the piled
silk of a legless bed upon the floor, found myself in a
great chamber with a
purple tapestry across the entrance, and a square
arch leading to a flat
terrace outside.
It was a glorious daybreak, making my heart light within me, the air
like
new milk, and the colours of the sunrise lay purple and yellow in
bars across
my room. I yawned and stretched, then rising, wrapped a
silken quilt
about me and went out into the flat terrace top, wherefrom
all the city could
be seen stretched in an ivory and emerald patchwork,
with open, blue water on
one side, and the Martian plain trending away
in illimitable distance upon
the other.
Directly underneath in the great square at the bottom of Hath's
palace
steps were gathered a concourse of people, brilliant in
many-coloured
dresses. They were sitting or lying about just as they
might for all
I knew have done through the warm night, without much order,
save that
where the black streaks of inlaid stone marked a carriageway across
the
square none were stationed. While I wondered what would bring so
many
together thus early, there came a sound of flutes--for these people
can
do nothing without piping like finches in a thicket in May--and from
the
storehouses half-way over to the harbour there streamed a line of
carts
piled high with provender. Down came the teams attended by their
slaves,
circling and wheeling into the open place, and as they passed each
group
those lazy, lolling beggars crowded round and took the dole they
were
too thriftless to earn themselves. It was strange to see how
listless
they were about the meal, even though Providence itself put it
into
their hands; to note how the yellow-girted slaves scudded amongst
them,
serving out the loaves, themselves had grown, harvested, and
baked;
slipping from group to group, rousing, exhorting, administering to
a
helpless throng that took their efforts without thought or thanks.
I stood there a long time, one foot upon the coping and my chin upon
my
hand, noting the beauty of the ruined town and wondering how such a
feeble
race as that which lay about, breakfasting in the limpid sunshine,
could have
come by a city like this, or kept even the ruins of its walls
and buildings
from the covetousness of others, until presently there was
a rustle of
primrose garments and my friend of the day before stood by me.
"Are you rested, traveller?" she questioned in that pretty voice of hers.
"Rested ambrosially, An."
"It is well; I will tell the Government and it will come up to wash
and
dress you, afterwards giving you breakfast."
"For the breakfast, damsel, I shall be grateful, but as for the
washing
and dressing I will defend myself to the last gasp sooner than
submit
to such administration."
"How strange! Do you never wash in your country?"
"Yes, but it is a matter left largely to our own discretion; so, my
dear
girl, if you will leave me for a minute or two in quest of that
meal you have
mentioned, I will guarantee to be ready when it comes."
Away she slipped, with a shrug of her rosy shoulders, to return
presently,
carrying a tray covered with a white cloth, whereon were half a
dozen
glittering covers whence came most fragrant odours of cooked
things.
"Why, comrade," I said, sitting down and lifting lid by lid, for the
cold,
sweet air outside had made me hungry, "this is better than was
hoped for; I
thought from what I saw down yonder I should have to trot
behind a tumbril
for my breakfast, and eat it on my heels amongst your
sleepy friends
below."
An replied, "The stranger is a prince, we take it, in his own country,
and
princes fare not quite like common people, even here."
"So," I said, my mouth full of a strange, unknown fish, and a cake soft
as
milk and white as cotton in the pod. "Now that makes me feel at home!"
"Would you have had it otherwise with us?"
"No! now I come to think of it, it is most natural things should be
much
alike in all the corners of the universe; the splendid simplicity
that
rules the spheres, works much the same, no doubt, upon one side of the
sun
as upon the other. Yet, somehow--you can hardly wonder at
it--yesterday
I looked to find your world, when I realised where I had
tumbled to,
a world of djin and giants; of mad possibilities over realised,
and here
I see you dwellers by the utterly remote little more marvellous than
if
I had come amongst you on the introduction of a cheap tourist
ticket,
and round some neglected corner of my own distant world!"
"I hardly follow your meaning, sir."
"No, no, of course you cannot. I was forgetting you did not know!
There,
pass me the stuff on yonder platter that looks like caked mud from
an
anchor fluke, and swells like breath of paradise, and let me
question
you;" and while I sat and drank with that yellow servitor sitting
in
front of me, I plied her with questions, just as a baby might who
had
come into the world with a full-blown gift of speech. But though
she
was ready and willing enough to answer, and laughed gaily at my
quaint
ignorance of simple things, yet there was little water in the
well.
"Had they any kind of crafts or science; any cult of stars or
figures?"
But again she shook her head, and said, "Hath might know, Hath
understood
most things, but herself knew little of either." "Armies or
navies?" and
again the Martian shrugged her shoulders, questioning in
turn--
"What for?"
"What for!" I cried, a little angry with her engaging dulness, "Why,
to
keep that which the strong hand got, and to get more for those who
come
next; navies to sweep yonder blue seas, and armies to ward what
they
should bring home, or guard the city walls against all
enemies,--for
I suppose, An," I said, putting down my knife as the cheering
thought
came on me,--"I suppose, An, you have some enemies? It is not
like
Providence to give such riches as you possess, such lands, such
cities,
and not to supply the antidote in some one poor enough to covet
them."
At once the girl's face clouded over, and it was obvious a tender
subject
had been chanced upon. She waved her hand impatiently as though
to
change the subject, but I would not be put off.
"Come," I said, "this is better than breakfast. It was the
one
thing--this unknown enemy of yours--wanting to lever the dull mass
of
your too peacefulness. What is he like? How strong? How
stands the
quarrel between you? I was a soldier myself before the sea
allured me,
and love horse and sword best of all things."
"You would not jest if you knew our enemy!"
"That is as it may be. I have laughed in the face of many a
stronger
foe than yours is like to prove; but anyhow, give me a chance to
judge.
Come, who is it that frightens all the blood out of your cheeks by a
bare
mention and may not be laughed at even behind these substantial
walls?"
"First, then, you know, of course, that long ago this land of ours
was
harried from the West."
"Not I."
"No!" said An, with a little warmth. "If it comes to that, you
know
nothing."
Whereat I laughed, and, saying the reply was just, vowed I would
not
interrupt again; so she wont on saying how Hath--that
interminable
Hath!--would know it all better than she did, but long ago the
land
was overrun by a people from beyond the broad, blue waters outside;
a
people huge of person, hairy and savage, uncouth, unlettered, and
poor
An's voice trembled even to describe them; a people without mercy
or
compunction, dwellers in woods, eaters of flesh, who burnt,
plundered,
and destroyed all before them, and had toppled over this city
along with
many others in an ancient foray, the horrors of which, still burnt
lurid
in her people's minds.
"Ever since then," went on the girl, "these odious terrors of the
outer
land have been a nightmare to us, making hectic our pleasures,
and filling
our peace with horrid thoughts of what might be, should they
chance to come
again."
"'Tis unfortunate, no doubt, lady," I answered. "Yet it was long
ago,
and the plunderers are far away. Why not rise and raid them in
turn?
To live under such a nightmare is miserable, and a poet on my side
of
the ether has said--
"'He either fears his fate too much,
Or his deserts are
small,
Who will not put it to the touch,
To win or lose it
all.'
It seems to me you must either bustle and fight again, or sit tamely
down,
and by paying the coward's fee for peace, buy at heavy price,
indulgence from
the victor."
"We," said An simply, and with no show of shame, "would rather die
than
fight, and so we take the easier way, though a heavy one it is.
Look!" she
said, drawing me to the broad window whence we could get
a glimpse of the
westward town and the harbour out beyond the walls.
"Look! see yonder long
row of boats with brown sails hanging loose reefed
from every yard ranged all
along the quay. Even from here you can make
out the thin stream of
porter slaves passing to and fro between them and
the granaries like ants on
a sunny path. Those are our tax-men's ships,
they came yesterday from
far out across the sea, as punctual as fate
with the first day of spring, and
two or three nights hence we trust
will go again: and glad shall we be to see
them start, although they
leave scupper deep with our cloth, our corn, and
gold."
"Is that what they take for tribute?"
"That and one girl--the fairest they can find."
"One--only one! 'Tis very moderate, all things considered."
"She is for the thither king, Ar-hap, and though only one as you
say,
stranger, yet he who loses her is apt sometimes to think her one
too
many lost."
"By Jupiter himself it is well said! If I were that man I would
stir
up heaven and hell until I got her back; neither man, nor beast,
nor
devil should stay me in my quest!" As I spoke I thought for a
minute
An's fingers trembled a little as she fixed a flower upon my
coat,
while there was something like a sigh in her voice as she said--
"The maids of this country are not accustomed, sir, to be so
strongly
loved."
By this time, breakfasted and rehabilitated, I was ready to go forth.
The
girl swung back the heavy curtain that served in place of door across
the
entrance of my chamber, and leading the way by a corridor and marble
steps
while I followed, and whether it was the Martian air or the meal
I know not,
but thinking mighty well of myself until we came presently
onto the main
palace stairs, which led by stately flights from the upper
galleries to the
wide square below.
As we passed into the full sunshine--and no sunshine is so crisply
golden
as the Martian--amongst twined flowers and shrubs and gay, quaint
birds
building in the cornices, a sleek youth rose slowly from where he
had
spread his cloak as couch upon a step and approaching asked--
"You are the stranger of yesterday?"
"Yes," I answered.
"Then I bring a message from Prince Hath, saying it would pleasure
him
greatly if you would eat the morning meal with him."
"Why," I answered, "it is very civil indeed, but I have
breakfasted
already."
"And so has Hath," said the boy, gently yawning. "You see I came
here
early this morning, but knowing you would pass sooner or later I
thought
it would save me the trouble if I lay down till you came--those
quaint
people who built these places were so prodigal of steps," and
smiling
apologetically he sank back on his couch and began toying with a
leaf.
"Sweet fellow," I said, and you will note how I was getting into
their
style of conversation, "get back to Hath when you have rested,
give
him my most gracious thanks for the intended courtesy, but tell
him
the invitation should have started a week earlier; tell him from
me,
you nimble-footed messenger, that I will post-date his kindness and
come
tomorrow; say that meanwhile I pray him to send any ill news he has
for
me by you. Is the message too bulky for your slender
shoulders?"
`
"No," said the boy, rousing himself slowly, "I will take
it," and then he
prepared to go. He turned again and said, without a
trace of incivility,
"But indeed, stranger, I wish you would take the message
yourself.
This is the third flight of stairs I have been up today."
Everywhere it was the same friendly indolence. Half the
breakfasters
were lying on coloured shawls in groups about the square; the
other half
were strolling off--all in one direction, I noticed--as slowly as
could
be towards the open fields beyond; no one was active or had anything
to
do save the yellow folk who flitted to and fro fostering the
others,
and doing the city work as though it were their only thought in
life.
There were no shops in that strange city, for there were no
needs;
some booths I saw indeed, and temple-like places, but hollow, and
used
for birds and beasts--things these lazy Martians love. There was
no
tramp of busy feet, for no one was busy; no clank of swords or
armour
in those peaceful streets, for no one was warlike; no hustle, for
no
one hurried; no wide-packed asses nodding down the lanes, for there
was
nothing to fill their packs with, and though a cart sometimes came
by with a
load of lolling men and maids, or a small horse, for horses
they had, paced
along, itself nearly as lazy as the master he bore,
with trappings sewed over
bits of coloured shell and coral, yet somehow
it was all extraordinarily
unreal. It was a city full of the ghosts of
the life which once pulsed
through its ways. The streets were peopled,
the chatter of voices
everywhere, the singing boys and laughing girls
wandering, arms linked
together, down the ways filled every echo with
their merriment, yet somehow
it was all so shallow that again and again
I rubbed my eyes, wondering if I
were indeed awake, or whether it were
not a prolonged sleep of which the
tomorrow were still to come.
"What strikes me as strangest of all, good comrade," I observed
pleasantly
to the tripping presence at my elbow, "is that these countrymen of
yours
who shirk to climb a flight of steps, and have palms as soft as
rose
petals, these wide ways paved with stones as hard as a usurer's
heart."
An laughed. "The stones were still in their native quarries had
it
been left to us to seek them; we are like the conies in the ruins,
sir,
the inheritors of what other hands have done."
"Ay, and undone, I think, as well, for coming along I have noted
axe
chippings upon the walls, smudges of ancient fire and smoke upon
the
cornices."
An winced a little and stared uneasily at the walls, muttering below
her
breath something about trying to hide with flower garlands the marks
they
could not banish, but it was plain the conversation was not
pleasing
to her. So unpleasant was talk or sight of woodmen
(Thither-folk, as
she called them, in contradiction to the Hither people
about us here),
that the girl was clearly relieved when we were free of the
town and out
into the open playground of the people. The whole place
down there was a
gay, shifting crowd. The booths of yesterday, the
arcades, the archways,
were still standing, and during the night unknown
hands had redecked
them with flowers, while another day's sunshine had opened
the coppice
buds so that the whole place was brilliant past expression.
And here the
Hither folk were varying their idleness by a general
holiday. They were
standing about in groups, or lying ranked like
new-plucked flowers on
the banks, piping to each other through reeds as soft
and melodious as
running water. They were playing inconsequent games
and breaking off in
the middle of them like children looking for new
pleasures. They were
idling about the drinking booths, delicately
stupid with quaint, thin
wines, dealt out to all who asked; the maids were
ready to chevy or be
chevied through the blossoming thickets by anyone who
chanced upon them,
the men slipped their arms round slender waists and
wandered down the
paths, scarce seeming to care even whose waist it was they
circled or into
whose ear they whispered the remainder of the love-tale they
had begun
to some one else. And everywhere it was "Hi," and "Ha," and
"So," and
"See," as these quaint people called to one another, knowing each
other
as familiarly as ants of a nest, and by the same magic it seemed to
me.
"An," I said presently, when we had wandered an hour or so through
the
drifting throng, "have these good countrymen of yours no other names
but
monosyllabic, nothing to designate them but these chirruping
syllables?"
"Is it not enough?" answered my companion. "Once indeed I think we
had
longer names, but," she added, smiling, "how much trouble it saves
to
limit each one to a single sound. It is uncivil to one's neighbours
to
burden their tongues with double duty when half would do."
"But have you no patronymics--nothing to show the child comes of the
same
source as his father came?"
"We have no fathers."
"What! no fathers?" I said, starting and staring at her.
"No, nor mothers either, or at least none that we remember, for again,
why
should we? Mayhap in that strange district you come from you keep
count
of these things, but what have we to do with either when their
initial duty
is done. Look at that painted butterfly swinging on the
honey-laden
catkin there. What knows she of the mother who shed her life
into a
flowercup and forgot which flower it was the minute afterwards.
We, too, are
insects, stranger."
"And do you mean to say of this great concourse here, that every atom
is
solitary, individual, and can claim no kindred with another save the
loose
bonds of a general fraternity--a specious idea, horrible,
impracticable!"
Whereat An laughed. "Ask the grasshoppers if it is
impracticable;
ask the little buzzing things of grass and leaves who drift
hither and
thither upon each breath of wind, finding kinsmen never but
comrades
everywhere--ask them if it is horrible."
This made me melancholy, and somehow set me thinking of the
friends
immeasurably distant I had left but yesterday.
What were they doing? Did they miss me? I was to have called for
my
pay this afternoon, and tomorrow was to have run down South to see
that
freckled lady of mine. What would she think of my absence?
What would
she think if she knew where I was? Gods, it was too mad, too
absurd!
I thrust my hands into my pockets in fierce desperation, and
there
they clutched an old dance programme and an out-of-date check for a
New
York ferry-boat. I scowled about on that sunny, helpless people,
and
laying my hand bitterly upon my heart felt in the breast-pocket
beneath
a packet of unpaid Boston tailors' bills and a note from my
landlady
asking if I would let her aunt do my washing while I was on
shore.
Oh! what would they all think of me? Would they brand me as a
deserter,
a poltroon, and a thief, letting my name presently sink down in
shame
and mystery in the shadowy realm of the forgotten? Dreadful
thoughts!
I would think no more.
Maybe An had marked my melancholy, for presently she led me to a
stall
where in fantastic vases wines of sorts I have described before were
put
out for all who came to try them. There was medicine here for every
kind
of dulness--not the gross cure which earthly wine effects, but so
nicely
proportioned to each specific need that one could regulate one's
debauch
to a hairbreadth, rising through all the gamut of satisfaction, from
the
staid contentment coming of that flask there to the wild extravagances
of
the furthermost vase. So my stripling told me, running her finger
down
the line of beakers carved with strange figures and cased in
silver,
each in its cluster of little attendant drinking-cups,
like-coloured,
and waiting round on the white napkins as the shore boats wait
to unload
a cargo round the sides of a merchant vessel.
"And what," I said, after curiously examining each liquor in turn,
"what
is that which stands alone there in the humble earthen jar, as
though
unworthy of the company of the others."
"Oh, that," said my friend, "is the most essential of them all--that
is
the wine of recovery, without which all the others were deadly
poisons."
"The which, lady, looks as if it had a moral attaching to it."
"It may have; indeed I think it has, but I have forgotten. Prince
Hath
would know! Meanwhile let me give you to drink, great stranger,
let me
get you something."
"Well, then," I laughed, "reach me down an antidote to fate, a
specific
for an absent mistress, and forgetful friends."
"What was she like?" said An, hesitating a little and frowning.
"Nay, good friend," was my answer, "what can that matter to you?"
"Oh, nothing, of course," answered that Martian, and while she took
from
the table a cup and filled it with fluid I felt in the pouch of
my sword-belt
to see if by chance a bit of money was Iying there, but
there was none, only
the pips of an orange poor Polly had sucked and
laughingly thrown at me.
However, it did not matter. The girl handed me the cup, and I put
my
lips to it. The first taste was bitter and acrid, like the liquor
of
long-steeped wood. At the second taste a shiver of pleasure ran
through
me, and I opened my eyes and stared hard. The third taste
grossness
and heaviness and chagrin dropped from my heart; all the complexion
of
Providence altered in a flash, and a stupid irresistible joy,
unreasoning,
uncontrollable took possession of my fibre. I sank upon a
mossy bank
and, lolling my head, beamed idiotically on the lolling Martians
all
about me. How long I was like that I cannot say. The heavy
minutes of
sodden contentment slipped by unnoticed, unnumbered, till
presently I
felt the touch of a wine-cup at my lips again, and drinking of
another
liquor dulness vanished from my mind, my eyes cleared, my heart
throbbed;
a fantastic gaiety seized upon my limbs; I bounded to my feet, and
seizing
An's two hands in mine, swung that damsel round in a giddy dance,
capering
as never dancer danced before, till spent and weary I sank down
again
from sheer lack of breath, and only knew thereafter that An was
sitting
by me saying, "Drink! drink stranger, drink and forget!" and as a
third
time a cup was pressed to my lips, aches and pleasures, stupidness
and
joy, life itself, seemed slipping away into a splendid golden
vacuity,
a hazy episode of unconscious Elysium, indefinite, and
unfathomable.
CHAPTER V
When I woke, feeling as refreshed as though I had been dreaming through
a
long night, An, seeing me open-eyed, helped me to my feet, and when
I had
recovered my senses a little, asked if we should go on. I was
myself
again by this time, so willingly took her hand, and soon came out
of the
tangle into the open spaces. I must have been under the spell
of the
Martian wines longer than it seemed, for already it was late in
the
afternoon, the shadows of trees were lying deep and far-reaching
over the
motley crowds of people. Out here as the day waned they had
developed
some sort of method in their sports. In front of us was a
broad, grassy
course marked off with garlanded finger-posts, and in
this space rallies of
workfolk were taking part in all manner of games
under the eyes of a great
concourse of spectators, doing the Martians'
pleasures for them as they did
their labours. An led me gently on,
leaning on my arm heavier, I
thought, than she had done in the morning,
and ever and anon turning her
gazelle-like eyes upon me with a look I
could not understand. As we
sauntered forward I noticed all about lesser
circles where the yellow-girted
ones were drawing delighted laughter
from good-tempered crowds by tricks of
sleight-of-hand, and posturing,
or tossing gilded cups and balls as though
they were catering, as indeed
they were, for outgrown children. Others
fluted or sang songs in chorus
to the slow clapping of hands, while others
were doing I knew not what,
sitting silent amongst silent spectators who
every now and then burst out
laughing for no cause that I could see.
But An would not let me stop,
and so we pushed on through the crowd till we
came to the main enclosures
where a dozen slaves had run a race for the
amusement of those too lazy
to race themselves, and were sitting panting on
the grass.
To give them time to get their breath, perhaps, a man stepped out of
the
crowd dressed in a dark blue tunic, a strange vacuous-looking
fellow,
and throwing down a sheaf of javelins marched off a dozen paces,
then,
facing round, called out loudly he would give sixteen suits of
"summer
cloth" to any one who could prick him with a javelin from the
heap.
"Why," I said in amazement, "this is the best of fools--no one could
miss
from such a distance."
"Ay but," replied my guide, "he is a gifted one, versed in mystics."
I was just going to say a good javelin, shod with iron, was a
stronger
argument than any mystic I had ever heard of could stand, when out
of
the crowd stepped a youth, and amid the derisive cheers of his
friends
chose a reed from the bundle. He poised it in his hand a minute
to get
the middle, then turned on the living target. Whatever else they
might
be, these Martians were certainly beautiful as the daytime. Never
had
I seen such a perfect embodiment of grace and elegance as that boy
as
he stood there for a moment poised to the throw; the afternoon
sunshine
warm and strong on his bunched brown hair, a girlish flush of
shyness
on his handsome face, and the sleek perfection of his limbs, clear
cut
against the dusky background beyond. And now the javelin was
going.
Surely the mystic would think better of it at the last moment!
No! the
initiate held his ground with tight-shut lips and retrospective
eyes,
and even as I looked the weapon flew upon its errand.
"There goes the soul of a fool!" I exclaimed, and as the words
were
uttered the spear struck, or seemed to, between the neck and shoulder,
but
instead of piercing rose high into the air, quivering and flashing,
and
presently turning over, fell back, and plunged deep into the turf,
while
a low murmur of indifferent pleasure went round amongst the
onlookers.
Thereat An, yawning gently, looked to me and said, "A
strong-willed
fellow, isn't he, friend?"
I hesitated a minute and then asked, "Was it WILL which turned
that
shaft?"
She answered with simplicity, "Why, of course--what else?"
By this time another boy had stepped out, and having chosen a
javelin,
tested it with hand and foot, then retiring a pace or two rushed up
to
the throwing mark and flung it straight and true into the bared bosom
of
the man. And as though it had struck a wall of brass, the shaft
leapt
back falling quivering at the thrower's feet. Another and another
tried
unsuccessfully, until at last, vexed at their futility, I said, "I
have
a somewhat scanty wardrobe that would be all the better for that
fellow's
summer suiting, by your leave I will venture a throw against
him."
"It is useless," answered An; "none but one who knows more magic than
he,
or is especially befriended by the Fates can touch him through the
envelope
he has put on."
"Still, I think I will try."
"It is hopeless, I would not willingly see you fail," whispered the
girl,
with a sudden show of friendship.
"And what," I said, bending down, "would you give me if I
succeeded?"
Whereat An laughed a little uneasily, and, withdrawing her hand
from mine,
half turned away. So I pushed through the spectators and
stepped into
the ring. I went straight up to the pile of weapons, and
having chosen
one went over to the mystic. "Good fellow," I cried out
ostentatiously,
trying the sharpness of the javelin-point with my finger,
"where are
all of those sixteen summer suits of yours lying hid?"
"It matters nothing," said the man, as if he were asleep.
"Ay, but by the stars it does, for it will vex the quiet repose of
your
soul tomorrow if your heirs should swear they could not find them."
"It matters nothing," muttered the will-wrapped visionary.
"It will matter something if I take you at your word. Come,
friend
Purple-jerkin, will you take the council with your legs and run
while
there is yet time, or stand up to be thrown at?"
"I stand here immoveable in the confidence of my initiation."
"Then, by thunder, I will initiate you into the mysteries of
a
javelin-end, and your blood be on your head."
The Martians were all craning their necks in hushed eagerness as I
turned
to the casting-place, and, poising the javelin, faced the
magician.
Would he run at the last moment? I half hoped so; for a
minute I gave him
the chance, then, as he showed no sign of wavering, I drew
my hand back,
shook the javelin back till it bent like a reed, and hurled it
at him.
The Martians' heads turned as though all on one pivot as the spear
sped
through the air, expecting no doubt to see it recoil as others had
done.
But it took him full in the centre of his chest, and with a wild
wave
of arms and a flutter of purple raiment sent him backwards, and
down,
and over and over in a shapeless heap of limbs and flying raiment,
while
a low murmur of awed surprise rose from the spectators. They
crowded
round him in a dense ring, as An came flitting to me with a startled
face.
"Oh, stranger," she burst out, "you have surely killed him!" but
more
astounded I had broken down his guard than grieved at his injury.
"No," I answered smilingly; "a sore chest he may have tomorrow, but
dead
he is not, for I turned the lance-point back as I spun it, and it
was
the butt-end I threw at him!"
"It was none the less wonderful; I thought you were a common man, a
prince
mayhap, come but from over the hills, but now something tells me
you
are more than that," and she lapsed into thoughtful silence for a
time.
Neither of us were wishful to go back amongst those who were raising
the
bruised magician to his legs, but wandered away instead through
the deepening
twilight towards the city over meadows whose damp, soft
fragrance loaded the
air with sleepy pleasure, neither of us saying
a word till the dusk deepened
and the quick night descended, while
we came amongst the gardened houses, the
thousand lights of an unreal
city rising like a jewelled bank before us, and
there An said she would
leave me for a time, meeting me again in the palace
square later on,
"To see Princess Heru read the destinies of the year."
"What!" I exclaimed, "more magic? I have been brought up on
more
substantial mental stuff than this."
"Nevertheless, I would advise you to come to the square," persisted
my
companion. "It affects us all, and--who knows? --may affect
you
more than any."
Therein poor An was unconsciously wearing the cloak of prophesy
herself,
and, shrugging my shoulders good-humouredly, I kissed her chin,
little
realising, as I let her fingers slip from mine, that I should see
her
no more.
Turning back alone, through the city, through ways twinkling with
myriad
lights as little lamps began to blink out amongst garlands
and flower-decked
booths on every hand, I walked on, lost in varying
thoughts, until, fairly
tired and hungry, I found myself outside a stall
where many Martians stood
eating and drinking to their hearts' content.
I was known to none of them,
and, forgetting past experience, was looking
on rather enviously, when there
came a touch upon my arm, and--
"Are you hungry, sir?" asked a bystander.
"Ay," I said, "hungry, good friend, and with all the zest which an
empty
purse lends to that condition."
"Then here is what you need, sir, even from here the wine smells good,
and
the fried fruit would make a mouse's eye twinkle. Why do you wait?"
"Why wait? Why, because though the rich man's dinner goes in at
his
mouth, the poor man must often be content to dine through his nose.
I
tell you I have nothing to get me a meal with."
The stranger seemed to speculate on this for a time, and then he said,
"I
cannot fathom your meaning, sir. Buying and selling, gold and
money,
all these have no meaning to me. Surely the twin blessings of an
appetite
and food abundant ready and free before you are enough."
"What! free is it--free like the breakfast served out this morning?"
"Why, of course," said the youth, with mild depreciation; "everything
here
is free. Everything is his who will take it, without exception.
What
else is the good of a coherent society and a Government if it cannot
provide
you with so rudimentary a thing as a meal?"
Whereat joyfully I undid my belt, and, without nicely examining
the
argument, marched into the booth, and there put Martian hospitality
to
the test, eating and drinking, but this time with growing wisdom,
till
I was a new man, and then, paying my leaving with a wave of the hand
to
the yellow-girted one who dispensed the common provender, I sauntered
on
again, caring little or nothing which way the road went, and soon
across
the current of my meditations a peal of laughter broke, accompanied
by
the piping of a flute somewhere close at hand, and the next minute
I
found myself amid a ring of light-hearted roisterers who were
linking
hands for a dance to the music a curly-headed fellow was making close
by.
They made me join them! One rosey-faced damsel at the hither end
of
the chain drew up to me, and, without a word, slipped her soft,
baby
fingers into my hand; on the other side another came with melting
eyes,
breath like a bed of violets, and banked-up fun puckering her
dainty
mouth. What could I do but give her a hand as well? The
flute began
to gurgle anew, like a drinking spout in spring-time, and away we
went,
faster and faster each minute, the boys and girls swinging
themselves
in time to the tune, and capering presently till their tender
feet
were twinkling over the ground in gay confusion. Faster and
faster
till, as the infection of the dance spread even to the outside
groups,
I capered too. My word! if they could have seen me that night
from the
deck of the old Carolina, how they would have laughed--sword
swinging,
coat-tails flying--faster and faster, round and round we went,
till
limbs could stand no more; the gasping piper blew himself quite
out,
and the dance ended as abruptly as it commenced, the dancers
melting
away to join others or casting themselves panting on the turf.
Certainly these Martian girls were blessed with an
ingratiating
simplicity. My new friend of the violet-scented breath
hung back a
little, then after looking at me demurely for a minute or two,
like
a child that chooses a new playmate, came softly up, and, standing
on
tiptoe, kissed me on the cheek. It was not unpleasant, so I turned
the
other, whereon, guessing my meaning, without the smallest
hesitation,
she reached up again, and pressed her pretty mouth to my bronzed
skin
a second time. Then, with a little sigh of satisfaction, she ran
an
arm through mine, saying, "Comrade, from what country have you come?
I
never saw one quite like you before."
"From what country had I come?" Again the frown dropped down upon
my
forehead. Was I dreaming--was I mad? Where indeed had I come
from?
I stared back over my shoulder, and there, as if in answer to
my
thought--there, where the black tracery of flowering shrubs waved in
the
soft night wind, over a gap in the crumbling ivory ramparts, the
sky
was brightening. As I looked into the centre of that glow, a
planet,
magnified by the wonderful air, came swinging up, pale but splendid,
and
mapped by soft colours--green, violet, and red. I knew it on the
minute,
Heaven only knows how, but I knew it, and a desperate thrill of
loneliness
swept over me, a spasm of comprehension of the horrible void
dividing us.
Never did yearning babe stretch arms more wistfully to an
unattainable
mother than I at that moment to my mother earth. All her
meanness and
prosaicness was forgotten, all her imperfections and
shortcomings; it was
home, the one tangible thing in the glittering emptiness
of the spheres.
All my soul went into my eyes, and then I sneezed violently,
and turning
round, found that sweet damsel whose silky head nestled so
friendly on
my shoulder was tickling my nose with a feather she had picked
up.
Womanlike, she had forgotten all about her first question, and now
asked
another, "Will you come to supper with me, stranger? 'Tis nearly
ready,
I think."
"To be able to say no to such an invitation, lady, is the first thing
a
young man should learn," I answered lightly; but then, seeing there
was
nothing save the most innocent friendliness in those hazel eyes,
I went on,
"but that stern rule may admit of variance. Only, as it
chances, I have
just supped at the public expense. If, instead, you
would be a sailor's
sweetheart for an hour, and take me to this show of
yours--your princess's
benefit, or whatever it is--I shall be obliged;
my previous guide is hull
down over the horizon, and I am clean out of
my reckoning in this crowd."
By way of reply, the little lady, light as an elf, took me by
the
fingertips, and, gleefully skipping forward, piloted me through
the
mazes of her city until we came out into the great square fronting on
the
palace, which rose beyond it like a white chalk cliff in the dull
light.
Not a taper showed anywhere round its circumference, but a
mysterious
kind of radiance like sea phosphorescence beamed from the palace
porch.
All was in such deathlike silence that the nails in my "ammunition"
boots
made an unpleasant clanking as they struck on the marble pavement;
yet,
by the uncertain starlight, I saw, to my surprise, the whole square
was
thronged with Martians, all facing towards the porch, as still,
graven
images, and as voiceless, for once, as though they had indeed been
marble.
It was strange to see them sitting there in the twilight, waiting
for
I knew not what, and my friend's voice at my elbow almost startled
me
as she said, in a whisper, "The princess knows you are in the
crowd,
and desires you to go up upon the steps near where she will be."
"Who brought her message?" I asked, gazing vaguely round, for none
had
spoken to us for an hour or more.
"No one," said my companion, gently pushing me up an open way towards
the
palace steps left clear by the sitting Martians. "It came direct
from
her to me this minute."
"But how?" I persisted.
"Nay," said the girl, "if we stop to talk like this we shall not be
placed
before she comes, and thus throw a whole year's knowledge out."
So, bottling my speculations, I allowed myself to be led up the
first
flight of worn, white steps to where, on the terrace between them
and
the next flight leading directly to the palace portico, was a
flat,
having a circle about twenty feet across, inlaid upon the marble
with
darker coloured blocks. Inside that circle, as I sat down close by
it
in the twilight, showed another circle, and then a final one in
whose
inmost middle stood a tall iron tripod and something atop of it covered
by
a cloth. And all round the outer circle were magic symbols--I
started as
I recognised the meaning of some of them--within these again the
inner
circle held what looked like the representations of planets,
ending,
as I have said, in that dished hollow made by countless dancers'
feet,
and its solitary tripod. Back again, I glanced towards the square
where
the great concourse--ten thousand of them, perhaps--were sitting
mute
and silent in the deepening shadows, then back to the magic
circles,
till the silence and expectancy of a strange scene began to possess
me.
Shadow down below, star-dusted heaven above, and not a figure moving;
when
suddenly something like a long-drawn sigh came from the lips of
the expectant
multitude, and I was aware every eye had suddenly turned
back to the palace
porch, where, as we looked, a figure, wrapped in pale
blue robes, appeared
and stood for a minute, then stole down the steps
with an eagerness in every
movement holding us spellbound. I have seen
many splendid pageants and
many sights, each of which might be the talk
of a lifetime, but somehow
nothing ever so engrossing, so thrilling,
as that ghostly figure in flowing
robes stealing across the piazza in
starlight and silence--the princess of a
broken kingdom, the priestess
of a forgotten faith coming to her station to
perform a jugglery of
which she knew not even the meaning. It was my
versatile friend Heru,
and with quick, incisive steps, her whole frame ambent
for the time
with the fervour of her mission, she came swiftly down to within
a
dozen yards of where I stood. Heru, indeed, but not the same
princess
as in the morning; an inspired priestess rather, her slim body
wrapped
in blue and quivering with emotion, her face ashine with Delphic
fire,
her hair loose, her feet bare, until at last when, as she stood
within
the limit of the magic circle, her white hands upon her breast, her
eyes
flashing like planets themselves in the starshine she looked so
ghostly
and unreal I felt for a minute I was dreaming.
Then began a strange, weird dance amongst the imagery of the rings,
over
which my earth planet was beginning to throw a haze of light.
At first it was
hardly more than a walk, a slow procession round the
twin circumferences of
the centred tripod. But soon it increased to an
extraordinary graceful
measure, a cadenced step without music or sound
that riveted my eyes to the
dancer. Presently I saw those mystic,
twinkling feet of hers--as the
dance became swifter--were performing
a measured round amongst the planet
signs--spelling out something,
I knew not what, with quick, light touch
amongst the zodiac figures,
dancing out a soundless invocation of some kind
as a dumb man might
spell a message by touching letters. Quicker and
quicker, for minute
after minute, grew the dance, swifter and swifter the
swing of the light
blue drapery as the priestess, with eager face and staring
eyes, swung
panting round upon her orbit, and redder and redder over the city
tops
rose the circumference of the earth. It seemed to me all the
silent
multitude were breathing heavily as we watched that giddy dance,
and
whatever THEY felt, all my own senses seemed to be winding up upon
that
revolving figure as thread winds on a spindle.
"When will she stop?" I whispered to my friend under my breath.
"When the earth-star rests in the roof-niche of the temple it
is
climbing," she answered back.
"And then?"
"On the tripod is a globe of water. In it she will see the destiny of
the
year, and will tell us. The whiter the water stays, the better for
us;
it never varies from white. But we must not talk; see! she is
stopping."
And as I looked back, the dance was certainly ebbing now with
such
smoothly decreasing undulations, that every heart began to beat
calmer
in response. There was a minute or two of such slow cessation,
and then
to say she stopped were too gross a description. Motion rather
died away
from her, and the priestess grounded as smoothly as a ship grounds
in
fine weather on a sandy bank. There she was at last, crouched
behind
the tripod, one corner of the cloth covering it grasped in her
hand,
and her eyes fixed on the shining round just poised upon the distant
run.
Keenly the girl watched it slide into zenith, then the cloth was
snatched
from the tripod-top. As it fell it uncovered a beautiful and
perfect
globe of clear white glass, a foot or so in diameter, and
obviously
filled with the thinnest, most limpid water imaginable. At
first it
seemed to me, who stood near to the priestess of Mars, with that
beaming
sphere directly between us, and the newly risen world, that its
smooth
and flawless face was absolutely devoid of sign or colouring.
Then,
as the distant planet became stronger in the magnifying Martian
air,
or my eyes better accustomed to that sudden nucleus of brilliancy,
a
delicate and infinitely lovely network of colours came upon it.
They were
like the radiant prisms that sometimes flush the surface of a
bubble more
than aught else for a time. But as I watched that mosaic
of yellow and
purple creep softly to and fro upon the globe it seemed
they slowly took form
and meaning. Another minute or two and they
had certainly congealed
into a settled plan, and then, as I stared and
wondered, it burst upon me in
a minute that I was looking upon a picture,
faithful in every detail, of the
world I stood on; all its ruddy forests,
its sapphire sea, both broad and
narrow ones, its white peaked mountains,
and unnumbered islands being mapped
out with startling clearness for a
spell upon that beaming orb.
Then a strange thing happened. Heru, who had been crouching in
a
tremulous heap by the tripod, rose stealthily and passed her hands a
few
times across the sphere. Colour and picture vanished at her touch
like
breath from a mirror. Again all was clear and pellucid.
"Now," said my companion, "now listen! For Heru reads the
destiny;
the whiter the globe stays the better for us--" and then I felt
her
hand tighten on mine with a startled grasp as the words died away
upon
her lips.
Even as the girl spoke, the sphere, which had been beaming in the
centre
of the silent square like a mighty white jewel, began to flush
with
angry red. Redder and redder grew the gleam--a fiery glow which
seemed
curdling in the interior of the round as though it were filled
with
flame; redder and redder, until the princess, staring into it,
seemed
turned against the jet-black night behind, into a form of molten
metal.
A spasm of terror passed across her as she stared; her limbs
stiffened;
her frightened hands were clutched in front, and she stood
cowering under
that great crimson nucleus like one bereft of power and life,
and lost
to every sense but that of agony. Not a syllable came from her
lips,
not a movement stirred her body, only that dumb, stupid stare of
horror,
at the something she saw in the globe. What could I do? I
could not
sit and see her soul come out at her frightened eyes, and not a
Martian
moved a finger to her rescue; the red shine gleamed on empty
faces,
tier above tier, and flung its broad flush over the endless rank
of
open-mouthed spectators, then back I looked to Heru--that winsome
little
lady for whom, you will remember, I had already more than a
passing
fancy--and saw with a thrill of emotion that while she still kept
her
eyes on the flaming globe like one in a horrible dream her hands
were
slowly, very slowly, rising in supplication to ME! It was not
vanity.
There was no mistaking the direction of that silent, imploring
appeal.
Not a man of her countrymen moved, not even black Hath! There
was
not a sound in the world, it seemed, but the noisy clatter of my
own
shoenails on the marble flags. In the great red eye of that unholy
globe
the Martians glimmered like a picture multitude under the red cliff
of
their ruined palace. I glared round at them with contempt for a
minute,
then sprang forward and snatched the princess up. It was like
pulling a
flower up by the roots. She was stiff and stark when I lay
hold of her,
but when I tore her from the magic ground she suddenly gave a
piercing
shriek, and fainted in my arms.
Then as I turned upon my heels with her upon my breast my foot caught
upon
the cloths still wound about the tripod of the sphere. Over went
that
implement of a thousand years of sorcery, and out went the red fire.
But
little I cared--the princess was safe! And up the palace steps,
amidst
a low, wailing hum of consternation from the recovering Martians,
I bore that
bundle of limp and senseless loveliness up into the pale shine
of her own
porch, and there, laying her down upon a couch, watched her
recover presently
amongst her women with a varied assortment of emotions
tingling in my
veins.
CHAPTER VI
Beyond the first flutter of surprise, the Martians had shown no
interest
in the abrupt termination of the year's divinations. They
melted away,
a trifle more silently perhaps than usual, when I shattered the
magic
globe, but with their invariable indifference, and having handed
the
reviving Heru over to some women who led her away, apparently
already half
forgetful of the things that had just happened, I was
left alone on the
palace steps, not even An beside me, and only the
shadow of a passerby now
and then to break the solitude. Whereon a
great loneliness took hold
upon me, and, pacing to and fro along the
ancient terrace with bent head and
folded arms, I bewailed my fate.
To and fro I walked, heedless and
melancholy, thinking of the old world,
that was so far and this near world so
distant from me in everything
making life worth living, thinking, as I strode
gloomily here and there,
how gladly I would exchange these poor puppets and
the mockery of a town
they dwelt in, for a sight of my comrades and a corner
in the poorest
wine-shop salon in New York or 'Frisco; idly speculating why,
and how,
I came here, as I sauntered down amongst the glistening,
shell-like
fragments of the shattered globe, and finding no answer. How
could I?
It was too fair, I thought, standing there in the open; there was a
fatal
sweetness in the air, a deadly sufficiency in the beauty of
everything
around falling on the lax senses like some sleepy draught of
pleasure.
Not a leaf stirred, the wide purple roof of the sky was unbroken
by
the healthy promise of a cloud from rim to rim, the splendid
country,
teeming with its spring-time richness, lay in rank perfection
everywhere;
and just as rank and sleek and passionless were those who owned
it.
Why, even I, who yesterday was strong, began to come under the spell
of
it. But yesterday the spirit of the old world was still strong
within
me, yet how much things were now changing. The well-strung
muscles
loosening, the heart beating a slower measure, the busy mind
drowsing off to
listlessness. Was I, too, destined to become like these?
Was the red
stuff in my veins to be watered down to pallid Martian sap?
Was ambition and
hope to desert me, and idleness itself become laborious,
while life ran to
seed in gilded uselessness? Little did I guess how
unnecessary my fears
were, or of the incredible fairy tale of adventure
into which fate was going
to plunge me.
Still engrossed the next morning by these thoughts, I decided I would
go
to Hath. Hath was a man--at least they said so--he might
sympathise
even though he could not help, and so, dressing finished, I went
down
towards the innermost palace whence for an hour or two had come
sounds
of unwonted bustle. Asking for the way occasionally from sleepy
folk
lolling about the corridors, waiting as it seemed for their
breakfasts
to come to them, and embarrassed by the new daylight, I wandered
to
and fro in the labyrinths of that stony ant-heap until I chanced upon
a
curtained doorway which admitted to a long chamber, high-roofed,
ample in
proportions, with colonnades on either side separated from
the main aisle by
rows of flowery figures and emblematic scroll-work,
meaning I knew not
what. Above those pillars ran a gallery with many
windows looking out
over the ruined city. While at the further end of
the chamber stood
three broad steps leading to a dais. As I entered, the
whole place was
full of bustling girls, their yellow garments like a bed
of flowers in the
sunlight trickling through the casements, and all intent
on the spreading of
a feast on long tables ranged up and down the hall.
The morning light
streamed in on the white cloths. It glittered on the
glass and the gold
they were putting on the trestles, and gave resplendent
depths of colour to
the ribbon bands round the pillars. All were so busy
no one noticed me
standing in the twilight by the door, but presently,
laying a hand on a
worker's shoulder, I asked who they banqueted for,
and why such unwonted
preparation?
"It is the marriage-feast tonight, stranger, and a marvel you did not
know
it. You, too, are to be wed."
"I had not heard of it, damsel; a paternal forethought of your
Government,
I suppose? Have you any idea who the lady is?"
"How should I know?" she answered laughingly. "That is the secret
of
the urn. Meanwhile, we have set you a place at the table-head
near
Princess Heru, and tonight you dip and have your chance like all of
them;
may luck send you a rosy bride, and save her from Ar-hap."
"Ay, now I remember; An told me of this before; Ar-hap is the
sovereign
with whom your people have a little difference, and shares unbidden
in the
free distribution of brides to-night. This promises to be
interesting;
depend on it I will come; if you will keep me a place where I
can
hear the speeches, and not forget me when the turtle soup goes
round,
I shall be more than grateful. Now to another matter. I
want to get
a few minutes with your President, Prince Hath. He
concentrates the
fluid intelligence of this sphere, I am told. Where
can I find him?"
"He is drunk, in the library, sir!"
"My word! It is early in the day for that, and a singular
conjunction
of place and circumstance."
"Where," said the girl, "could he safer be? We can always fetch him
if
we want him, and sunk in blue oblivion he will not come to harm."
"A cheerful view, Miss, which is worthy of the attention of our
reformers.
Nevertheless, I will go to him. I have known men tell more
truth in
that state than in any other."
The servitor directed me to the library, and after desolate wanderings
up
crumbling steps and down mouldering corridors, sunny and lovely in
decay, I
came to the immense lumber-shed of knowledge they had told me
of, a city of
dead books, a place of dusty cathedral aisles stored with
forgotten
learning. At a table sat Hath the purposeless, enthroned in
leather and
vellum, snoring in divine content amongst all that wasted
labour, and nothing
I could do was sufficient to shake him into semblance
of intelligence.
So perforce I turned away till he should have come
to himself, and wandering
round the splendid litter of a noble library,
presently amongst the ruck of
volumes on the floor, amongst those lordly
tomes in tattered green and gold,
and ivory, my eye lit upon a volume
propped up curiously on end, and going to
it through the confusion I saw
by the dried fruit rind upon the sticks
supporting it, that the grave
and reverend tome was set to catch a
mouse! It was a splendid book when
I looked more closely, bound as a
king might bind his choicest treasure,
the sweet-scented leather on it was no
doubt frayed; the golden arabesques
upon the covers had long since shed their
eyes of inset gems, the jewelled
clasp locking its learning up from vulgar
gaze was bent and open. Yet it
was a lordly tome with an odour of
sanctity about it, and lifting it
with difficulty, I noticed on its cover a
red stain of mouse's blood.
Those who put it to this quaint use of mouse-trap
had already had some
sport, but surely never was a mouse crushed before under
so much learning.
And while I stood guessing at what the book might hold
within, Heru, the
princess, came tripping in to me, and with the abrupt
familiarity of her
kind, laid a velvet hand upon my wrist, conned the title
over to herself.
"What does it say, sweet girl?" I asked. "The matter is learned,
by
its feel," and that maid, pursing up her pretty lips, read the title
to
me--"The Secret of the Gods."
"The Secret of the Gods," I murmured. "Was it possible other
worlds
had struggled hopelessly to come within the barest ken of that
great
knowledge, while here the same was set to catch a mouse with?"
I said, "Silver-footed, sit down and read me a passage or two,"
and
propping the mighty volume upon a table drew a bench before it and
pulled
her down beside me.
"Oh! a horrid, dry old book for certain," cried that lady, her
pink
fingertips falling as lightly on the musty leaves as almond petals
on
March dust. "Where shall I begin? It is all equally dull."
"Dip in," was my answer. " 'Tis no great matter where, but near
the
beginning. What says the writer of his intention? What sets
he out
to prove?"
"He says that is the Secret of the First Great Truth, descended
straight
to him--"
"Many have said so much, yet have lied."
"He says that which is written in his book is through him but not of
him,
past criticism and beyond cavil. 'Tis all in ancient and
crabbed
characters going back to the threshold of my learning, but here
upon
this passage-top where they are writ large I make them out to
say,
'ONLY THE MAN WHO HAS DIED MANY TIMES BEGINS TO LIVE.'"
"A pregnant passage! Turn another page, and try again; I have an
inkling
of the book already."
"'Tis poor, silly stuff," said the girl, slipping a hand covertly into
my
own. "Why will you make me read it? I have a book on pomatums
worth
twice as much as this."
`
"Nevertheless, dip in again, dear
lady. What says the next heading?"
And with a little sigh at the
heaviness of her task, Heru read out:
"SOMETIMES THE GODS THEMSELVES FORGET
THE ANSWERS TO THEIR OWN RIDDLES."
"Lady, I knew it!
"All this is still preliminary to the great matter of the book, but
the
mutterings of the priest who draws back the curtains of the
shrine--and
here, after the scribe has left these two yellow pages blank as
though
to set a space of reverence between himself and what comes
next--here
speaks the truth, the voice, the fact of all life." But
"Oh! Jones,"
she said, turning from the dusty pages and clasping her
young, milk-warm
hands over mine and leaning towards me until her blushing
cheek was near
to my shoulder and the incense of her breath upon me.
"Oh! Gulliver
Jones," she said. "Make me read no more; my soul
revolts from the task,
the crazy brown letters swim before my eyes. Is
there no learning near
at hand that would be pleasanter reading than this
silly book of yours?
What, after all," she said, growing bolder at the sound
of her own voice,
"what, after all, is the musty reticence of gods to the
whispered secret
of a maid? Jones, splendid stranger for whom all men
stand aside and
women look over shoulders, oh, let me be your book!" she
whispered,
slipping on to my knee and winding her arms round my neck till,
through
the white glimmer of her single vest, I could feel her heart
beating
against mine. "Newest and dearest of friends, put by this
dreary learning
and look in my eyes; is there nothing to be spelt out
there?"
And I was constrained to do as she bid me, for she was as fresh as
an
almond blossom touched by the sun, and looking down into two
swimming
blue lakes where shyness and passion were contending--books easy
enough,
in truth, to be read, I saw that she loved me, with the
unconventional
ardour of her nature.
It was a pleasant discovery, if its abruptness was embarrassing, for
she
was a maid in a thousand; and half ashamed and half laughing I let
her
escalade me, throwing now and then a rueful look at the Secret of
the Gods,
and all that priceless knowledge treated so unworthily.
What else could I do? Besides, I loved her myself! And if there
was
a momentary chagrin at having yonder golden knowledge put off by
this
lovely interruption, yet I was flesh and blood, the gods could
wait--they
had to wait long and often before, and when this sweet interpreter
was
comforted we would have another try. So it happened I took her into
my
heart and gave her the answer she asked for.
For a long time we sat in the dusky grandeur of the royal library, my
mind
revolving between wonder and admiration of the neglected knowledge
all about,
and the stirrings of a new love, while Heru herself, lapsed
again into
Martian calm, lay half sleeping on my shoulder, but presently,
unwinding her
arms, I put her down.
"There, sweetheart," I whispered, "enough of this for the moment;
tonight,
perhaps, some more, but while we are here amongst all this lordly
litter,
I can think of nothing else." Again I bid her turn the pages,
noting
as she did so how each chapter was headed by the coloured
configuration
of a world. Page by page we turned of crackling
parchment, until by
chance, at the top of one, my eye caught a coloured round
I could not
fail to recognise--'twas the spinning button on the blue breast
of
the immeasurable that yesterday I inhabited. "Read here," I
cried,
clapping my finger upon the page midway down, where there were
some
signs looking like Egyptian writing. "Says this quaint dabbler in
all
knowledge anything of Isis, anything of Phra, of Ammon, of Ammon
Top?"
"And who was Isis? who Ammon Top?" asked the lady.
"Nay, read," I answered, and down the page her slender fingers
went
awandering till at a spot of knotted signs they stopped. "Why,
here
is something about thy Isis," exclaimed Heru, as though amused at
my
perspicuity. "Here, halfway down this chapter of earth-history,
it
says," and putting one pink knee across the other to better prop the
book she
read:
"And the priests of Thebes were gone; the sand stood untrampled on
the
temple steps a thousand years; the wild bees sang the song of
desolation
in the ears of Isis; the wild cats littered in the stony lap of
Ammon;
ay, another thousand years went by, and earth was tilled of unseen
hands
and sown with yellow grain from Paradise, and the thin veil that
separates
the known from the unknown was rent, and men walked to and
fro."
"Go on," I said.
"Nay," laughed the other, "the little mice in their eagerness have
been
before you--see, all this corner is gnawed away."
"Read on again," I said, "where the page is whole; those sips of
knowledge
you have given make me thirsty for more. There, begin where
this blazonry
of initialed red and gold looks so like the carpet spread by
the scribe
for the feet of a sovereign truth--what says he here?" And
she, half
pouting to be set back once more to that task, half wondering as
she
gazed on those magic letters, let her eyes run down the page, then
began:
"And it was the Beginning, and in the centre void presently there came
a
nucleus of light: and the light brightened in the grey primeval
morning
and became definite and articulate. And from the midst of that
natal
splendour, behind which was the Unknowable, the life came
hitherward;
from the midst of that nucleus undescribed, undescribable, there
issued
presently the primeval sigh that breathed the breath of life
into
all things. And that sigh thrilled through the empty spaces of
the
illimitable: it breathed the breath of promise over the frozen hills
of
the outside planets where the night-frost had lasted without
beginning:
and the waters of ten thousand nameless oceans, girding nameless
planets,
were stirred, trembling into their depth. It crossed the
illimitable
spaces where the herding aerolites swirl forever through space in
the
wake of careering world, and all their whistling wings answered to
it.
It reverberated through the grey wastes of vacuity, and crossed
the
dark oceans of the Outside, even to the black shores of the
eternal
night beyond.
"And hardly had echo of that breath died away in the hollow of the
heavens
and the empty wombs of a million barren worlds, when the light
brightened
again, and drawing in upon itself became definite and took
form, and
therefrom, at the moment of primitive conception, there came--"
And just then, as she had read so far as that, when all my faculties
were
aching to know what came next--whether this were but the idle
scribbling
of a vacuous fool, or something else--there rose the sound of soft
flutes
and tinkling bells in the corridors, as seneschals wandered piping
round
the palace to call folk to meals, a smell of roast meat and
grilling
fish as that procession lifted the curtains between the halls,
and--
"Dinner!" shouted my sweet Martian, slapping the covers of The Secret
of
the Gods together and pushing the stately tome headlong from the
table.
"Dinner! 'Tis worth a hundred thousand planets to the
hungry!"
Nothing I could say would keep her, and, scarcely knowing whether to
laugh
or to be angry at so unseemly an interruption, but both being
purposeless
I dug my hands into my pockets, and somewhat sulkily refusing
Heru's
invitation to luncheon in the corridor (Navy rations had not fitted
my
stomach for these constant debauches of gossamer food), strolled
into
the town again in no very pleasant frame of mind.
CHAPTER VII
It was only at moments like these I had any time to reflect on
my
circumstances or that giddy chance which had shot me into space in
this
fashion, and, frankly, the opportunities, when they did come,
brought such an
extraordinary depressing train of thought, I by no means
invited them.
Even with the time available the occasion was always awry
for such
reflection. These dainty triflers made sulking as impossible
amongst
them as philosophy in a ballroom. When I stalked out like that
from the
library in fine mood to moralise and apostrophise heaven in a
way that would
no doubt have looked fine upon these pages, one sprightly
damsel, just as the
gloomy rhetoric was bursting from my lips, thrust a
flower under my nose
whose scent brought on a violent attack of sneezing,
her companions joining
hands and dancing round me while they imitated
my agony. Then, when I
burst away from them and rushed down a narrow
arcade of crumbling mansions,
another stopped me in mid-career, and
taking the honey-stick she was sucking
from her lips, put it to mine,
like a pretty, playful child. Another
asked me to dance, another to
drink pink oblivion with her, and so on.
How could one lament amongst
all this irritating cheerfulness?
An might have helped me, for poor An was intelligent for a Martian,
but
she had disappeared, and the terrible vacuity of life in the planet
was
forced upon me when I realised that possessing no cognomen, no fixed
address,
or rating, it would be the merest chance if I ever came across
her again.
Looking for my friendly guide and getting more and more at sea amongst
a
maze of comely but similar faces, I made chance acquaintance with
another of
her kind who cheerfully drank my health at the Government's
expense, and
chatted on things Martian. She took me to see a funeral
by way of
amusement, and I found these people floated their dead off on
flower-decked
rafts instead of burying them, the send-offs all taking
place upon a certain
swift-flowing stream, which carried the dead
away into the vast region of
northern ice, but more exactly whither my
informant seemed to have no
idea. The voyager on this occasion was old,
and this brought to my mind
the curious fact that I had observed few
children in the city, and no elders,
all, except perhaps Hath, being in
a state of sleek youthfulness. My
new friend explained the peculiarity
by declaring Martians ripened with
extraordinary rapidity from infancy
to the equivalent of about twenty-five
years of age, with us, and then
remained at that period however long they
might live; Only when they died
did their accumulated seasons come upon them;
the girl turning pale, and
wringing her pretty hands in sympathetic concern
when I told her there
was a land where decrepitude was not so happily
postponed. The Martians,
she said, arranged their calendar by the
varying colours of the seasons,
and loved blue as an antidote to the
generally red and rusty character
of their soil.
Discussing such things as these we lightly squandered the day away, and
I
know of nothing more to note until the evening was come again: that
wonderful
purple evening which creeps over the outer worlds at sunset,
a seductive
darkness gemmed with ten thousand stars riding so low in the
heaven they seem
scarcely more than mast high. When that hour was come
my friend tiptoed
again to my cheek, and then, pointing to the palace
and laughingly hoping
fate would send me a bride "as soft as catkin and
as sweet as honey," slipped
away into the darkness.
Then I remembered all on a sudden this was the connubial evening of
my
sprightly friends--the occasion when, as An had told me, the
Government
constituted itself into a gigantic matrimonial agency, and, with
the
cheerful carelessness of the place, shuffled the matrimonial pack
anew,
and dealt a fresh hand to all the players. Now I had no wish to
avail
myself of a sailor's privilege of a bride in every port, but
surely
this game would be interesting enough to see, even if I were but
a
disinterested spectator. As a matter of fact I was something more
than
that, and had been thinking a good deal of Heru during the day. I
do
not know whether I actually aspired to her hand--that were a large
order,
even if there had been no suspicion in my mind she was already bespoke
in
some vague way by the invisible Hath, most abortive of princes. But
she
was undeniably a lovely girl; the more one thought of her the more
she
grew upon the fancy, and then the preference she had shown myself
was
very gratifying. Yes, I would certainly see this quaint
ceremonial,
even if I took no leading part in it.
The great centre hall of the palace was full of a radiant light
bringing
up its ruined columns and intruding creepers to the best effect when
I
entered. Dinner also was just being served, as they would say in
another,
and alas! very distant place, and the whole building thronged with
folk.
Down the centre low tables with room for four hundred people were
ranged,
but they looked quaint enough since but two hundred were sitting
there,
all brand-new bachelors about to be turned into brand new Benedicts,
and
taking it mightily calmly it seemed. Across the hall-top was a
raised
table similarly arranged and ornamented; and entering into the
spirit
of the thing, and little guessing how stern a reality was to come
from
the evening, I sat down in a vacant place near to the dais, and only
a
few paces from where the pale, ghost-eyed Hath was already seated.
Almost immediately afterwards music began to buzz all about
the
hall--music of the kind the people loved which always seemed to me
as
though it were exuding from the tables and benches, so disembodied
and
difficult it was to locate; all the sleepy gallants raised
their
flower-encircled heads at the same time, seizing their wine-cups,
already
filled to the brim, and the door at the bottom of the hall
opening,
the ladies, preceded by one carrying a mysterious vase covered with
a
glittering cloth, came in.
Now, being somewhat thirsty, I had already drunk half the wine in
my
beaker, and whether it was that draught, drugged as all Martian wines
are,
or the sheer loveliness of the maids themselves, I cannot say, but as
the
procession entered, and, dividing, circled round under the colonnades
of
the hall, a sensation of extraordinary felicity came over me--an
emotion
of divine contentment purged of all grossness--and I stared and
stared
at the circling loveliness, gossamer-clad, flower-girdled, tripping
by
me with vapid delight. Either the wine was budding in my head, or
there
was little to choose from amongst them, for had any of those ladies
sat
down in the vacant place beside me, I should certainly have accepted
her
as a gift from heaven, without question or cavil. But one after
another
they slipped by, modestly taking their places in the shadows until
at
last came Princess Heru, and at the sight of her my soul was stirred.
She came undulating over the white marble, the loveliness of her
fairy
person dimmed but scarcely hidden by a robe of softest lawn in
colour
like rose-petals, her eyes aglitter with excitement and a charming
blush
upon her face.
She came straight up to me, and, resting a dainty hand upon my
shoulder,
whispered, "Are you come as a spectator only, dear Mr. Jones, or do
you
join in our custom tonight?"
"I came only as a bystander, lady, but the fascination of the
opportunity
is deadly--"
"And have you any preference?"--this in the softest little voice
from
somewhere in the nape of my neck. "Strangers sometimes say there
are
fair women in Seth."
"None--till you came; and now, as was said a long time ago, 'All is
dross
that is not Helen.' Dearest lady," I ran on, detaining her by
the
fingertips and gazing up into those shy and star-like eyes, "must
I indeed
put all the hopes your kindness has roused in me these last
few days to a
shuffle in yonder urn, taking my chance with all these
lazy fellows? In
that land whereof I was, we would not have had it so,
we loaded our dice in
these matters, a strong man there might have a
willing maid though all heaven
were set against him! But give me leave,
sweet lady, and I will ruffle
with these fellows; give me a glance and I
will barter my life for your
billet when it is drawn, but to stand idly
by and see you won by a cold
chance, I cannot do it."
That lady laughed a little and said, "Men make laws, dear Jones, for
women
to keep. It is the rule, and we must not break it." Then,
gently
tugging at her imprisoned fingers and gathering up her skirts to
go,
she added, "But it might happen that wit here were better than
sword."
Then she hesitated, and freeing herself at last slipped from my side,
yet
before she was quite gone half turned again and whispered so low that
no
one but I could hear it, "A golden pool, and a silver fish, and a
line
no thicker than a hair!" and before I could beg a meaning of her,
had
passed down the hall and taken a place with the other expectant
damsels.
"A golden pool," I said to myself, "a silver fish, and a line of
hair."
What could she mean? Yet that she meant something, and something
clearly
of importance, I could not doubt. "A golden pool, and a silver
fish--"
I buried my chin in my chest and thought deeply but without effect
while
the preparations were made and the fateful urn, each maid having
slipped
her name tablet within, was brought down to us, covered in a
beautiful
web of rose-coloured tissue, and commenced its round, passing
slowly from
hand to hand as each of those handsome, impassive, fawn-eyed
gallants
lifted a corner of the web in turn and helped themselves to
fate.
"A golden pool," I muttered, "and a silver fish"--so absorbed in my
own
thoughts I hardly noticed the great cup begin its journey, but when it
had
gone three or four places the glitter of the lights upon it caught my
eye.
It was of pure gold, round-brimmed, and circled about with a string
of
the blue convolvulus, which implies delight to these people. Ay!
and
each man was plunging his hand into the dark and taking in his turn
a
small notch-edged mother-of-pearl billet from it that flashed soft
and
silvery as he turned it in his hand to read the name engraved in
unknown
characters thereon. "Why," I said, with a start, "surely THIS
might
be the golden pool and these the silver fish--but the hair-fine
line?
And again I meditated deeply, with all my senses on the watch.
Slowly the urn crept round, and as each man took a ticket from it,
and
passed it, smiling, to the seneschal behind him, that official read
out
the name upon it, and a blushing damsel slipped from the crowd
above,
crossing over to the side of the man with whom chance had thus
lightly
linked her for the brief Martian year, and putting her hands in
his
they kissed before all the company, and sat down to their places at
the
table as calmly as country folk might choose partners at a village
fair
in hay-time.
But not so with me. Each time a name was called I started and stared
at
the drawer in a way which should have filled him with alarm had
alarm
been possible to the peace-soaked triflers, then turned to glance
to
where, amongst the women, my tender little princess was leaning
against a
pillar, with drooping head, slowly pulling a convolvulus bud
to pieces.
None drew, though all were thinking of her, as I could tell
in my
fingertips. Keener and keener grew the suspense as name after name
was
told and each slim white damsel skipped to the place allotted her.
And all
the time I kept muttering to myself about that "golden pool,"
wondering and
wondering until the urn had passed half round the tables
and was only some
three men up from me--and then an idea flashed across
my mind. I dipped
my fingers in the scented water-basin on the table,
drying them carefully on
a napkin, and waiting, outwardly as calm as
any, yet inwardly wrung by those
tremors which beset all male creation
in such circumstances.
And now at last it was my turn. The great urn, blazing
golden,
through its rosy covering, was in front, and all eyes on me. I
clapped
a sunburnt hand upon its top as though I would take all remaining in
it
to myself and stared round at that company--only her herself I durst
not
look at! Then, with a beating heart, I lifted a corner of the web
and
slipped my hand into the dark inside, muttering to myself as I did
so,
"A golden pool, and a silver fish, and a line no thicker than a
hair."
I touched in turn twenty perplexing tablets and was no whit the
wiser,
and felt about the sides yet came to nothing, groping here and there
with
a rising despair, until as my fingers, still damp and fine of touch,
went
round the sides a second time, yes! there was something, something in
the
hollow of the fluting, a thought, a thread, and yet enough. I took
it
unseen, lifting it with infinite forbearance, and the end was
weighted,
the other tablets slipped and rattled as from their midst, hanging
to
that one fine virgin hair, up came a pearly billet. I doubted no
longer,
but snapped the thread, and showed the tablet, heard Heru's name,
read
from it amongst the soft applause of that luxurious company with
all
the unconcern I could muster.
There she was in a moment, lip to lip with me, before them all, her
eyes
more than ever like planets from her native skies, and only the
quick
heave of her bosom, slowly subsiding like a ground swell after a
storm,
remaining to tell that even Martian blood could sometimes beat
quicker
than usual! She sat down in her place by me in the simplest
way, and soon
everything was as merry as could be. The main meal came
on now, and as
far as I could see those Martian gallants had extremely good
appetites,
though they drank at first but little, wisely remembering the
strength of
their wines. As for me, I ate of fishes that never swam in
earthly seas,
and of strange fowl that never flapped a way through thick
terrestrial
air, ate and drank as happy as a king, and falling each moment
more and
more in love with the wonderfully beautiful girl at my side who was
a
real woman of flesh and blood I knew, yet somehow so dainty, so pink
and
white, so unlike other girls in the smoothness of her outlines, in
the
subtle grace of each unthinking attitude, that again and again I
looked
at her over the rim of my tankard half fearing she might dissolve
into
nothing, being the half-fairy which she was.
Presently she asked, "Did that deed of mine, the hair in the urn,
offend
you, stranger?"
"Offend me, lady!" I laughed. "Why, had it been the blackest
crime
that ever came out of a perverse imagination it would have brought
its
own pardon with it; I, least of all in this room, have least cause
to
be offended."
"I risked much for you and broke our rules."
"Why, no doubt that was so, but 'tis the privilege of your kind to
have
some say in this little matter of giving and taking in marriage.
I only
marvel that your countrywomen submit so tamely to the quaintest
game of
chance I ever played at.
"Ay, and it is women's nature no doubt to keep the laws which others
make,
as you have said yourself. Yet this rule, lady, is one broken
with more
credit than kept, and if you have offended no one more than me,
your penance
is easily done."
"But I have offended some one," she said, laying her hand on mine
with
gentle nervousness in its touch, "one who has the power to hurt,
and enough
energy to resent. Hath, up there at the cross-table, have
I offended
deeply tonight, for he hoped to have me, and would have
compelled any other
man to barter me for the maid chance assigned to
him; but of you, somehow, he
is afraid--I have seen him staring at you,
and changing colour as though he
knew something no one else knows--"
"Briefly, charming girl," I said, for the wine was beginning to sing in
my
head, and my eyes were blinking stupidly--"briefly, Hath hath thee
not, and
there's an end of it. I would spit a score of Haths, as these
figs are
spit on this golden skewer, before I would relinquish a hair
of your head to
him, or to any man," and as everything about the great
hall began to look
gauzy and unreal through the gathering fumes of my
confusion, I smiled on
that gracious lady, and began to whisper I know
not what to her, and whisper
and doze, and doze--
I know not how long afterwards it was, whether a minute or an hour,
but
when I lifted my head suddenly from the lady's shoulder all the
place
was in confusion, every one upon their feet, the talk and the
drinking
ceased, and all eyes turned to the far doorway where the curtains
were
just dropping again as I looked, while in front of them were
standing
three men.
These newcomers were utterly unlike any others--a frightful vision of
ugly
strength amidst the lolling loveliness all about. Low of stature,
broad
of shoulder, hairy, deep-chested, with sharp, twinkling eyes, set
far back
under bushy eyebrows, retreating foreheads, and flat noses in
faces tanned to
a dusky copper hue by exposure to every kind of weather
that racks the
extreme Martian climate they were so opposite to all
about me, so quaint and
grim amongst those mild, fair-skinned folk,
that at first I thought they were
but a disordered creation of my fancy.
I rubbed my eyes and stared and blinked, but no! they were real men,
of
flesh and blood, and now they had come down with as much stateliness
as their
bandy legs would admit of, into the full glare of the lights
to the centre
table where Hath sat. I saw their splendid apparel, the
great strings
of rudely polished gems hung round their hairy necks and
wrists, the
cunningly dyed skins of soft-furred animals, green and red
and black,
wherewith their limbs were swathed, and then I heard some
one by me whisper
in a frightened tone, "The envoys from over seas."
"Oh," I thought sleepily to myself, "so these are the ape-men of
the
western woods, are they? Those who long ago vanquished my
white-skinned
friends and yearly come to claim their tribute. Jove,
what hay they must
have made of them! How those peach-skinned girls
must have screamed and
the downy striplings by them felt their dimpled knees
knock together,
as the mad flood of barbarians came pouring over from the
forest, and
long ago stormed their citadels like a stream of red lava, as
deadly,
as irresistible, as remorseless!" And I lay asprawl upon my
arms on
the table watching them with the stupid indifference I thought I
could
so well afford.
Meanwhile Hath was on foot, pale and obsequious like others in
the
presence of those dread ambassadors, but more collected, I
thought.
With the deepest bows he welcomed them, handing them drink in a
golden
State cup, and when they had drunk (I heard the liquor running down
their
great throats, in the frightened hush, like water in a runnel on a
wet
day), they wiped their fierce lips upon their furry sleeves, and
the
leader began reciting the tribute for the year. So much corn, so
much
wine--and very much it was--so many thousands ells of cloth and
webbing,
and so much hammered gold, and sinah and lar, precious metal of
which I
knew nothing as yet; and ever as he went growling through the list
in
his harsh animal voice, he refreshed his memory with a coloured
stick
whereon a notch was made for every item, the woodmen not having
come
as yet, apparently, to the gentler art of written signs and
symbols.
Longer and longer that caravan of unearned wealth stretched out
before
my fancy, but at last it was done, or all but done, and the head
envoy,
passing the painted stick to a man behind, folded his bare, sinewy
arms,
upon which the red fell bristles as it does upon a gorilla's, across
his
ample chest, and, including us all in one general scowl, turned to
Hath
as he said--
"All this for Ar-hap, the wood-king, my master and yours; all this,
and
the most beautiful woman here tonight at your tables!"
"An item," I smiled stupidly to myself, for indeed I was very sleepy
and
had no nice perception of things, "which shows his majesty with
the
two-pronged name is a jolly fellow after all, and knows wealth is
incomplete
without the crown and priming of all riches. I wonder how
the Martian
boys will like this postscript," and chin on hand, and eyes
that would hardly
stay open, I watched to see what would happen next.
There was a little
conversation between the prince and the ape-man;
then I saw Hath the traitor
point in my direction and say--
"Since you ask and will be advised, then, mighty sir, there can be
no
doubt of it, the most beautiful woman here tonight is undoubtedly
she
who sits yonder by him in blue."
"A very pretty compliment!" I thought, too dull to see what was
coming
quickly, "and handsome of Hath, all things considered."
And so I dozed and dozed, and then started, and stared! Was I in
my
senses? Was I mad, or dreaming? The drunkenness dropped from
me like
a mantle; with a single, smothered cry I came to myself and saw that
it
was all too true. The savage envoy had come down the hall at
Hath's
vindictive prompting, had lifted my fair girl to her feet, and
there,
even as I looked, had drawn her, white as death, into the red circle
of
his arm, and with one hand under her chin had raised her sweet face
to
within an inch of his, and was staring at her with small, ugly eyes.
"Yes," said the enjoy, more interestedly than he had spoken yet, "it
will
do; the tribute is accepted--for Ar-hap, my master!" And
taking
shrinking Heru by the wrist, and laying a heavy hand upon her
shoulder,
he was about to lead her up the hall.
I was sober enough then. I was on foot in an instant, and before all
the
glittering company, before those simpering girls and pale Martian
youths,
who sat mumbling their fingers, too frightened to lift their eyes
from off
their half-finished dinners, I sprang at the envoy. I struck
him with my
clenched fist on the side of his bullet head, and he let go of
Heru, who
slipped insensible from his hairy chest like a white cloud slipping
down
the slopes of a hill at sunrise, and turned on me with a snort of
rage.
We stared at each other for a minute, and then I felt the wine
fumes
roaring in my head; I rushed at him and closed. It was like
embracing
a mountain bull, and he responded with a hug that made my ribs
crackle.
For a minute we were locked together like that, swinging here and
there,
and then getting a hand loose, I belaboured him so unmercifully
that
he put his head down, and that was what I wanted. I got a new hold
of
him as we staggered and plunged, roaring the while like the wild
beasts
we were, the teeth chattering in the Martian heads as they watched
us,
and then, exerting all my strength, lifted him fairly from his feet
and
with supreme effort swung him up, shoulder high, and with a mighty
heave
hurled him across the tables, flung that ambassador, whom no
Martian
dared look upon, crashing and sprawling through the gold and silver
of
the feast, whirled him round with such a splendid send that bench
and
trestle, tankards and flagons, chairs and cloths and candelabras
all
went down into thundering chaos with him, and the envoy only stayed
when
his sacred person came to harbour amongst the westral odds and
ends,
the soiled linen, and dirty platters of our wedding feast.
I remember seeing him there on hands and knees, and then the liquor I
had
had would not be denied. In vain I drew my hands across my
drooping
eyelids, in vain I tried to master my knees that knocked
together.
The spell of the love-drink that Heru, blushing, had held to my
lips
was on me. Its soft, overwhelming influence rose like a prismatic
fog
between me and my enemy, everything again became hazy and dreamlike,
and
feebly calling on Heru, my chin dropped upon my chest, my limbs
relaxed,
and I slipped down in drowsy oblivion before my rival.
CHAPTER VIII
They must have carried me, still under the influence of wine fumes,
to the
chamber where I slept that night, for when I woke the following
morning my
surroundings were familiar enough, though a glorious maze of
uncertainties
rocked to and fro in my mind.
Was it a real feast we had shared in overnight, or only a quaint
dream?
Was Heru real or only a lovely fancy? And those hairy ruffians
of whom
a horrible vision danced before my waking eyes, were they fancy
too?
No, my wrists still ached with the strain of the tussle, the
quaint,
sad wine taste was still on my lips--it was all real enough, I
decided,
starting up in bed; and if it was real where was the little
princess?
What had they done with her? Surely they had not given her to
the
ape-men--cowards though they were they could not have been cowards
enough
for that. And as I wondered a keen, bright picture of the
hapless maid as
I saw her last blossomed before my mind's eye, the
ambassadors on either
side holding her wrists, and she shrinking from them in
horror while her
poor, white face turned to me for rescue in desperate
pleading--oh! I
must find her at all costs; and leaping from bed I snatched
up those
trousers without which the best of heroes is nothing, and had hardly
got
into them when there came the patter of light feet without and a
Martian,
in a hurry for once, with half a dozen others behind him, swept
aside
the curtains of my doorway.
They peeped and peered all about the room, then one said, "Is
Princess
Heru with you, sir?"
"No," I answered roughly. "Saints alive, man, do you think I would
have
you tumbling in here over each other's heels if she were?"
"Then it must indeed have been Heru," he said, speaking in an awed
voice
to his fellows, "whom we saw carried down to the harbour at daybreak
by
yonder woodmen," and the pink upon their pretty cheeks faded to
nothing
at the suggestion.
"What!" I roared, "Heru taken from the palace by a handful of men
and none
of you infernal rascals--none of you white-livered abortions
lifted a hand to
save her--curse on you a thousand times. Out of my
way, you
churls!" And snatching up coat and hat and sword I rushed
furiously
down the long, marble stairs just as the short Martian night
was giving place
to lavender-coloured light of morning. I found my
way somehow down the
deserted corridors where the air was heavy with
aromatic vapours; I flew by
curtained niches and chambers where amongst
mounds of half-withered flowers
the Martian lovers were slowly waking.
Down into the banquethall I sped, and
there in the twilight was the litter
of the feast still about--gold cups and
silver, broken bread and meat, the
convolvulus flowers all turning their
pallid faces to the rosy daylight,
making pools of brightness between the
shadows. Amongst the litter
little sapphire-coloured finches were
feeding, twittering merrily to
themselves as they hopped about, and here and
there down the long tables
lay asprawl a belated reveller, his empty
oblivion-phial before him,
his curly head upon his arms, dreaming perhaps of
last night's feast
and a neglected bride dozing dispassionate in some distant
chamber.
But Heru was not there and little I cared for twittering finches
or
sighing damsels. With hasty feet I rushed down the hall out into
the
cool, sweet air of the planet morning.
There I met one whom I knew, and he told me he had been among the
crowd
and had heard the woodmen had gone no farther than the river
gate,
that Heru was with them beyond a doubt. I would not listen to
more.
"Good!" I shouted. "Get me a horse and just a handful of your
sleek
kindred and we will pull the prize from the bear's paw even
yet!
Surely," I said, turning to a knot of Martian youths who stood
listening
a few steps away, "surely some of you will come with me at this
pinch?
The big bullies are very few; the sea runs behind them; the maid in
their
clutch is worth fighting for; it needs but one good onset, five
minutes'
gallantry, and she is ours again. Think how fine it will look
to bring
her back before yon sleepy fellows have found their weapons.
You, there,
with the blue tunic! you look a proper fellow, and something of a
heart
should beat under such gay wrappings, will you come with me?"
But blue-mantle, biting his thumbs, murmured he had not breakfasted
yet
and edged away behind his companions. Wherever I looked eyes
dropped
and timid hands fidgeted as their owners backed off from my
dangerous
enthusiasm. There was obviously no help to be had from them,
and meantime
the precious moments were flying, so with a disdainful glance I
turned
on my heels and set off alone as hard as I could go for the
harbour.
But it was too late. I rushed through the marketplace where all
was
silent and deserted; I ran on to the wharves beyond and they were
empty
save for the litter and embers of the fires Ar-hap's men had made
during
their stay; I dashed out to the landing-place, and there at the
hythe
the last boat-loads of the villains were just embarking, two
boatloads
of them twenty yards from shore, and another still upon the
beach.
This latter was careening over as a dusky group of men lifted
aboard
to a heap of tumbled silks and stuffs in the stern such a sweet
piece
of insensible merchandise as no man, I at least of all, could
mistake.
It was Heru herself, and the rogues were ladling her on board like
so
much sandal-wood or cotton sheeting. I did not wait for more, but
out
came my sword, and yielding to a reckless impulse, for which perhaps
last
night's wine was as much to blame as anything, I sprang down the steps
and
leapt aboard of the boat just as it was pushed off upon the swift
tide.
Full of Bersark rage, I cut one brawny copper-coloured thief down,
and
struck another with my fist between the eyes so that he went
headlong
into the water, sinking like lead, and deep into the great target
of
his neighbour's chest I drove my blade. Had there been a man beside
me,
had there been but two or three of all those silken triflers, too
late
come on the terraces above to watch, we might have won. But all
alone
what could I do? That last red beast turned on my blade, and as
he fell
dragged me half down with him. I staggered up, and tugging the
metal
from him turned on the next.
At that moment the cause of all the turmoil, roused by the fighting,
came
to herself, and sitting up on the piled plunder in the boat stared
round
for a moment with a childish horror at the barbarians whose prize she
was,
then at me, then at the dead man at my feet whose blood was welling in
a
red tide from the wound in his breast. As the full meaning of the
scene
dawned upon her she started to her feet, looking wonderfully
beautiful
amongst those dusky forms, and extending her hands to me began to
cry in
the most piteous way. I sprang forward, and as I did so saw an
ape-man
clap his hairy paw over her mouth and face--it was like an eclipse of
the
moon by a red earth-shadow, I thought at the moment--and drag her
roughly
back, but that was about the last I remembered. As I turned to
hit him
standing on the slippery thwart, another rogue crept up behind and
let
drive with a club he had in hand. The cudgel caught me sideways on
the
head, a glancing shot. I can recall a blaze of light, a strange
medley
of sounds in my ears, and then, clutching at a pile of stuffs as I
fell,
a tall bower of spray rising on either hand, and the cool shock of
the
blue sea as I plunged headlong in--but nothing after that!
How long after I know not, but presently a tissue of daylight crept
into
my eyes, and I awoke again. It was better than nothing perhaps,
yet it
was a poor awakening. The big sun lay low down, and the day was
all but
done; so much I guessed as I rocked in that light with an
undulating
movement, and then as my senses returned more fully, recognised
with
a start of wonder that I was still in the water, floating on a
swift
current into the unknown on an air-filled pile of silken stuffs
which
had been pulled down with me from the boat when I got my ganging
from
yonder rascal's mace. It was a wet couch, sodden and chilly, but
as the
freshening evening wind blew on my face and the darkening water
lapped
against my forehead I revived more fully.
Where had we come to? I turned an aching neck, and all along on
both
sides seemed to stretch steep, straight coasts about a mile or so
apart,
in the shadow of the setting sun black as ebony. Between the two
the
hampered water ran quickly, with, away on the right, some shallow
sandy
spits and islands covered with dwarf bushes--chilly,
inhospitable-looking
places they seemed as I turned my eyes upon them; but he
who rides
helpless down an evening tide stands out for no great niceties
of
landing-place; could I but reach them they would make at least a
drier
bed than this of mine, and at that thought, turning over, I found
all
my muscles as stiff as iron, the sinews of my neck and forearms a
mass
of agonies and no more fit to swim me to those reedy swamps, which
now,
as pain and hunger began to tell, seemed to wear the aspects of
paradise.
With a groan I dropped back upon my raft and watched the islands
slipping
by, while over my feet the southern sky darkened to purple.
There was no help
there, but glancing round away on the left and a few
furlongs from me, I
noticed on the surface of the water two converging
strands of brightness, an
angle the point of which seemed to be coming
towards me. Nearer it came
and nearer, right across my road, until I
could see a black dot at the point,
a head presently developed, then as
we approached the ears and antlers of a
swimming stag. It was a huge
beast as it loomed up against the glow,
bigger than any mortal stag
ever was--the kind of fellow-traveller no one
would willingly accost,
but even if I had wished to get out of its path I had
no power to do so.
Closer and closer we came, one of us drifting helplessly, and the
other
swimming strongly for the islands. When we were about a furlong
apart the
great beast seemed to change its course, mayhap it took the
wreckage on
which I floated for an outlying shoal, something on which it
could rest a
space in that long swim. Be this as it may, the beast came
hurtling down
on me lip deep in the waves, a mighty brown head with pricked
ears that
flicked the water from them now and then, small bright eyes set far
back,
and wide palmated antlers on a mighty forehead, like the dead branches
of
a tree. What that Martian mountain elk had hoped for can only be
guessed,
what he met with was a tangle of floating finery carrying a
numbed
traveller on it, and with a snort of disappointment he turned
again.
It was a poor chance, but better than nothing, and as he turned I tried
to
throw a strand of silk I had unwound from the sodden mass over his
branching
tines. Quick as thought the beast twisted his head aside and
tossed his
antlers so that the try was fruitless. But was I to lose my
only chance
of shore? With all my strength I hurled myself upon him,
missing my
clutch again by a hair's-breadth and going headlong into the
salt furrow his
chest was turning up. Happily I kept hold of the web,
for the great elk
then turned back, passing between me and the ruck of
stuff and getting
thereby the silk under his chin, and as I came gasping
to the top once more
round came that dainty wreckage over his back,
and I clutched it, and sooner
than it takes to tell I was towing to the
shore as perhaps no one was ever
towed before.
The big beast dragged the ruck like withered weed behind him,
bellowing
all the time with a voice which made the hills echo all round; and
then,
when he got his feet upon the shallows, rose dripping and
mountainous,
a very cliff of black hide and limb against the night shine, and
with a
single sweep of his antlers tore the webbing from me, who lay prone
and
breathless in the mud, and, thinking it was his enemy, hurled the
limp
bundle on the beach, and then, having pounded it with his cloven
feet
into formless shreds, bellowed again victoriously and went off into
the
darkness of the forests.
CHAPTER IX
I landed, stiff enough as you will guess, but pleased to be on
shore
again. It was a melancholy neighbourhood of low islands,
overgrown
with rank grass and bushes, salt water encircling them, and inside
sandy
dunes and hummocks with shallow pools, gleaming ghostly in the
retreating
daylight, while beyond these rose the black bosses of what looked
like
a forest. Thither I made my way, plunging uncomfortably through
shallows,
and tripping over blackened branches which, lying just below the
surface,
quivered like snakes as the evening breeze ruffled each surface,
until
the ground hardened under foot, and presently I was standing,
hungry
and faint but safe, on dry land again.
The forest was so close to the sea, one could not advance without
entering
it, and once within its dark arcades every way looked equally
gloomy and
hopeless. I struggled through tangles night made more and
more
impenetrable each minute, until presently I could go no further,
and where a
dense canopy of trees overhead gave out for a minute on the
edge of a swampy
hollow, I determined to wait for daylight.
Never was there a more wet or weary traveller, or one more
desperately
lonely than he who wrapped himself up in the miserable
insufficiency of
his wet rags, and without fire or supper crept amongst the
exposed roots
of a tree growing out of a bank, and prepared to hope grimly
for morning.
Round and round meanwhile was drawn the close screen of night, till
the
clearing in front was blotted out, and only the tree-tops, black as
rugged
hills one behind the other, stood out against the heavy purple of
the circlet
of sky above. As the evening deepened the quaintest noises
began on
every hand--noises so strange and bewildering that as I cowered
down with my
teeth chattering, and stared hard into the impenetrable, they
could be
likened to nothing but the crying of all the souls of dead things
since the
beginning. Never was there such an infernal chorus as that
which played
up the Martian stars. Down there in front, where hummock
grass was
growing, some beast squeaked continuously, till I shouted at
him, then he
stopped a minute, and began again in entirely another note.
Away on the hills
two rival monsters were calling to each other in tones
so hollow they seemed
as I listened to penetrate through me, and echo
out of my heart again.
Far overhead, gigantic bats were flitting, the
shadow of their wings dimming
a dozen universes at once, and crying to
each other in shrill tones that rent
the air like tearing silk.
As I listened to those vampires discussing their infernal loves under
the
stars, from a branch right overhead broke such a deathly howl from
the throat
of a wandering forest cat that everything else was hushed for
a moment.
All about a myriad insects were making night giddy with their
ghostly fires,
while underground and from the labyrinths of matted roots
came quaint sounds
of rustling snakes and forest pigs, and all the lesser
things that dig and
scratch and growl.
Yet I was desperately sleepy, my sword hung heavy as lead at my side,
my
eyelids drooped, and so at last I dozed uneasily for an hour or two.
Then,
all on a sudden, I came wide awake with a shock. The night was
quieter
now; away in the forest depth strange noises still arose, but
close at hand
was a strange hush, like the hush of expectation, and,
listening wonderingly,
I was aware of slow, heavy footsteps coming up from
the river, now two or
three steps together, then a pause, then another
step or two, and as I bent
towards the approaching thing, staring into
the darkness, my strained senses
were conscious of another approach,
as like as could be, coming from behind
me. On they came, making the
very ground quake with their weight, till
I judged that both were about
on the edge of the clearing, two vast rat-like
shadows, but as big as
elephants, and bringing a most intolerable smell of
sour slime with them.
There, on the edge of the amphitheatre, each for the
first time appeared
to become aware of the other's presence--the footsteps
stopped dead.
I could hear the water dripping from the fur of those giant
brutes amongst
the shadows and the deep breathing of the one nearest me, a
scanty ten
paces off, but not another sound in the stillness.
Minute after minute passed, yet neither moved. A half-hour grew to
a
full hour, and that hour lengthened amid the keenest tension till
my
ears ached with listening, and my eyes were sore with straining
into
the blackness. At last I began to wonder whether those
earth-shaking
beasts had not been an evil dream, and was just venturing to
stretch out
a cramped leg, and rally myself upon my cowardice, when, without
warning,
at my elbow rose the most ear-piercing scream of rage that ever
came
from a living throat. There was a sweeping rush in the darkness
which I
could feel but not see, and with a shock the two gladiators met in
the
midst of the arena. Over and over they went screaming and
struggling,
and slipping and plunging. I could hear them tearing at
each other,
and the sharp cries of pain, first one and then another gave as
claw or
tooth got home, and all the time, though the ground was quaking
under
their struggles and the air full of horrible uproar, not a thing
was
to be seen. I did not even know what manner of beasts they were
who
rocked and rolled and tore at each other's throats, but I heard
their
teeth snapping, and their fierce breath in the pauses of the
struggle,
and could but wait in a huddle amongst the roots until it was
over.
To and fro they went, now at the far side of the dark clearing,
now
so close that hot drops of blood from their jaws fell on my face
like
rain in the darkness. It seemed as though the fight would never
end,
but presently there was more of worrying in it and less of
snapping;
it was clear one or the other had had enough and as I marked this
those
black shadows came gasping and struggling towards me. There was a
sudden
sharp cry, a desperate final tussle--before which strong trees
snapped
and bushes were flattened out like grass, not twenty yards
away--and
then for a minute all was silent.
One of them had killed, and as I sat rooted to the spot I was forced
to
listen while his enemy tore him up and ate him. Many a banquet
have
I been at, but never an uglier one than that. I sat in the
darkness
while the unknown thing at my feet ripped the flesh from his
half-dead
rival in strips, and across the damp night wind came the reek of
that
abominable feast--the reek of blood and spilt entrails--until I
turned
away my face in loathing, and was nearly starting to my feet to
venture
a rush into the forest shadows. But I was spellbound, and
remained
listening to the heavy munch of blood-stained jaws until presently
I
was aware other and lesser feasters were coming. There was a twinkle
of
hungry eyes all about the limits of the area, the shine of green
points
of envious fire that circled round in decreasing orbits, as the
little
foxes and jackals came crowding in. One fellow took me for a
rock,
so still I sat, putting his hot, soft paws upon my knee for a
space,
and others passed me so near I could all but touch them.
The big beast had taken himself off by this time, and there must have
been
several hundreds of these newcomers. A merry time they had of it;
the
whole place was full of the green, hurrying eyes, and amidst the
snap of
teeth and yapping and quarrelling I could hear the flesh being
torn from the
red bones in every direction. One wolf-like individual
brought a mass
of hot liver to eat between my feet, but I gave him a kick,
and sent him away
much to his surprise. Gradually, however, the sound
of this unholy
feast died away, and, though you may hardly believe it,
I fell off into a
doze. It was not sleep, but it served the purpose,
and when in an hour
or two a draught of cool air roused me, I awoke,
feeling more myself
again.
Slowly morning came, and the black wall of forest around became full
of
purple interstices as the east brightened. Those glimmers of
light
between bough and trunk turned to yellow and red, the day-shine
presently
stretched like a canopy from point to point of the treetops on
either
side of my sleeping-place, and I arose.
All my limbs were stiff with cold, my veins emptied by hunger and
wounds,
and for a space I had not even strength to move. But a little
rubbing
softened my cramped muscles presently and limping painfully down to
the
place of combat, I surveyed the traces of that midnight fight. I
will
not dwell upon it. It was ugly and grim; the trampled grass, the
giant
footmarks, each enringing its pool of curdled blood; the broken
bushes,
the grooved mud-slides where the unknown brutes had slid in
deadly
embrace; the hollows, the splintered boughs, their ragged points
tufted
with skin and hair--all was sickening to me. Yet so hungry was I
that
when I turned towards the odious remnants of the vanquished--a
shapeless
mass of abomination--my thoughts flew at once to
breakfasting! I went
down and inspected the victim cautiously--a huge
rat-like beast as far
as might be judged from the bare uprising ribs--all
that was left of him
looking like the framework of a schooner yacht.
His heart lay amongst
the offal, and my knife came out to cut a meal from it,
but I could not
do it. Three times I essayed the task, hunger and
disgust contending
for mastery; three times turned back in loathing. At
last I could stand
the sight no more, and, slamming the knife up again,
turned on my heels,
and fairly ran for fresh air and the shore, where the sea
was beginning to
glimmer in the light a few score yards through the forest
stems. There,
once more out on the open, on a pebbly beach, I stripped,
spreading my
things out to dry on the stones, and laying myself down with the
lapping
of the waves in my ears, and the first yellow sunshine thawing my
limbs,
tried to piece together the hurrying events of the last few days.
What were my gay Martians doing? Lazy dogs to let me, a stranger, be
the
only one to draw sword in defence of their own princess! Where was
poor
Heru, that sweet maiden wife? The thought of her in the hands of
the
ape-men was odious. And yet was I not mad to try to rescue, or even
to
follow her alone? If by any chance I could get off this
beast-haunted
place and catch up with the ravishers, what had I to look for
from them
except speedy extinction, and that likely enough by the most
painful
process they were acquainted with?
The other alternative of going back empty handed was terribly
ignominious.
I had lectured the amiable young manhood of Seth so soundly on
the
subject of gallantry, and set them such a good example on two
occasions,
that it would be bathos to saunter back, hands in pockets, and
confess I
knew nothing of the lady's fate and had been daunted by the first
night
alone in the forest. Besides, how dull it would be in that
beautiful,
tumble-down old city without Heru, with no expectation day by day
of
seeing her sylph-like form and hearing the merry tinkle of her
fairy
laughter as she scoffed at the unknown learning collected by her
ancestors
in a thousand laborious years. No! I would go on for
certain. I was
young, in love, and angry, and before those
qualifications difficulties
became light.
Meanwhile, the first essential was breakfast of some kind. I
arose,
stretched, put on my half-dried clothes, and mounting a low hummock
on
the forest edge looked around. The sun was riding up finely into
the
sky, and the sea to the eastward shone for leagues and leagues in
the
loveliest azure. Where it rippled on my own beach and those of the
low
islands noted over night, a wonderful fire of blue and red played
on
the sands as though the broken water were full of living gems. The
sky
was full of strange gulls with long, forked tails, and a lovely
little
flying lizard with transparent wings of the palest green--like those
of
a grasshopper--was flitting about picking up insect stragglers.
All this was very charming, but what I kept saying to myself was
"Streaky
rashers and hot coffee: rashers and coffee and rolls," and, indeed,
had
the gates of Paradise themselves opened at that moment I fear my
first
look down the celestial streets within would have been for a
restaurant.
They did not, and I was just turning away disconsolate when my
eye caught,
ascending from behind the next bluff down the beach, a thin
strand of
smoke rising into the morning air.
It was nothing so much in itself--a thin spiral creeping
upwards
mast-high, then flattening out into a mushroom head--but it
meant
everything to me. Where there was fire there must be humanity,
and where
there was humanity--ay, to the very outlayers of the
universe--there
must be breakfast. It was a splendid thought; I rushed
down the hillock
and went gaily for that blue thread amongst the reeds.
It was not two
hundred yards away, and soon below me was a tiny bay with
bluest water
frilling a silver beach, and in the midst of it a fire on a
hearth dancing
round a pot that simmered gloriously. But of an owner
there was nothing
to be seen. I peered here and there on the shore, but
nothing moved,
while out to sea the water was shining like molten metal with
not a
dot upon it!--what did it matter? I laughed as, pleased and
hungry,
I slipped down the bank and strode across the sands; it pleased Fate
to
play bandy with me, and if it sent me supperless to bed, why, here
was
restitution in the way of breakfast. I took up a morsel of the
stuff
in the kettle on a handy stick and found it good--indeed, I knew it
at
once as a very dainty mess made from the roots of a herb the
Martians
greatly liked; An had piled my platter with it when we supped that
night
in the market-place of Seth, and the sweet white stuff had melted
into
my corporal essence, it seemed, without any gross intermediate
process
of digestion. And here I was again, hungry, sniffing the
fragrant breath
of a full meal and not a soul in sight--I should have been a
fool not
to have eaten. So thinking, down I sat, taking the pot from
its place,
and when it was a little cool plunging my hands into it and
feasting
with as good an appetite as ever a man had before.
It was gloriously ambrosial, and deeper and deeper I went, with the
tall
stalk of the smoke in front growing from the hearth-stones like
some strange
new plant, the pleasant sunshine on my back, and never a
thought for anything
but the task in hand. Deeper and deeper, oblivious
of all else, until
to get the very last drops I lifted the pipkin up
and putting back my head
drank in that fashion.
It was only when with a sigh of pleasure I lowered it slowly again
that
over the rim as it sank there dawned upon me the vision of a
Martian
standing by an empty canoe on the edge of the water and regarding
me
with calm amazement. I was, in fact, so astonished that for a
minute
the empty pot stood still before my face, and over its edge we
stared
at each other in mute surprise, then with all the dignity that
might
be I laid the vessel down between my feet and waited for the
newcomer
to speak. She was a girl by her yellow garb, a fisherwoman, it
seemed,
for in the prow of her craft was piled a net upon which the scales
of
fishes were twinkling--a Martian, obviously, but something more
robust
than most of them, a savour of honest work about her sunburnt face
which
my pallid friends away yonder were lacking in, and when we had
stared
at each other for a few moments in silence she came forward a step
or
two and said without a trace of fear or shyness, "Are you a spirit,
sir?
"Why," I answered, "about as much, no more and no less, than most of us."
"Aye," she said. "I thought you were, for none but spirits live
here
upon this island; are you for good or evil?"
"Far better for the breakfast of which I fear I have robbed you,
but
wandering along the shore and finding this pot boiling with no
owner,
I ventured to sample it, and it was so good my appetite got the
better
of manners."
The girl bowed, and standing at a respectful distance asked if I
would
like some fish as well; she had some, but not many, and if I would
eat
she would cook them for me in a minute--it was not often, she
added
lightly, she had met one of my kind before. In fact, it was
obvious
that simple person did actually take me for a being of another
world,
and was it for me to say she was wrong? So adopting a dignity
worthy of
my reputation I nodded gravely to her offer. She fetched from
the boat
four little fishes of the daintiest kind imaginable. They were
each
about as big as a hand and pale blue when you looked down upon
them,
but so clear against the light that every bone and vein in their
bodies
could be traced. These were wrapped just as they were in a
broad, green
leaf and then the Martian, taking a pointed stick, made a hollow
in the
white ashes, laid them in side by side, and drew the hot dust over
again.
While they cooked we chatted as though the acquaintance were the
most
casual thing in the world, and I found it was indeed an island we
were
on and not the mainland, as I had hoped at first. Seth, she told
me,
was far away to the eastward, and if the woodmen had gone by in
their
ships they would have passed round to the north-west of where we
were.
I spent an hour or two with that amiable individual, and, it is to
be
hoped, sustained the character of a spiritual visitant with
considerable
dignity. In one particular at least, that, namely, of
appetite, I did
honour to my supposed source, and as my entertainer would not
hear of
payment in material kind, all I could do was to show her some
conjuring
tricks, which greatly increased her belief in my supernatural
origin,
and to teach her some new hitches and knots, using her
fishing-line
as a means of illustration, a demonstration which called from
her the
natural observation that we must be good sailors "up aloft" since
we
knew so much about cordage, then we parted.
She had seen nothing of the woodmen, though she had heard they had been
to
Seth and thought, from some niceties of geographical calculation which
I
could not follow, they would have crossed to the north, as just stated,
of
her island. There she told me, with much surprise at my desire for
the
information, how I might, by following the forest track to the
westward
coast, make my way to a fishing village, where they would give me a
canoe
and direct me, since such was my extraordinary wish, to the place
where,
if anywhere, the wild men had touched on their way home.
She filled my wallet with dried honey-cakes and my mouth with sugar
plums
from her little store, then down on her knees went that poor waif
of
a worn-out civilisation and kissed my hands in humble farewell, and
I,
blushing to be so saluted, and after all but a sailor, got her by
the
rosy fingers and lifted her up shoulder high, and getting one hand
under
her chin and the other behind her head kissed her twice upon her
pretty
cheeks; and so, I say, we parted.
CHAPTER X
Off into the forest I went, feeling a boyish elation to be so free
nor
taking heed or count of the reckless adventure before me. The
Martian
weather for the moment was lovely and the many-coloured grass lush
and
soft under foot. Mile after mile I went, heeding the distance
lightly,
the air was so elastic. Now pressing forward as the main
interest of my
errand took the upper hand, and remembrance of poor Heru like
a crushed
white flower in the red grip of those cruel ravishers came upon
me,
and then pausing to sigh with pleasure or stand agape--forgetful
even
of her--in wonder of the unknown loveliness about me.
And well might I stare! Everything in that forest was wonderful!
There
were plants which turned from colour to colour with the varying hours
of
the day. While others had a growth so swift it was dangerous to sit
in
their neighbourhood since the long, succulent tendrils clambering
from
the parent stem would weave you into a helpless tangle while you
gazed,
fascinated, upon them. There were plants that climbed and
walked; sighing
plants who called the winged things of the air to them with a
noise so
like to a girl sobbing that again and again I stopped in the
tangled
path to listen. There were green bladder-mosses which swam
about the
surface of the still pools like gigantic frog-broods. There
were on the
ridges warrior trees burning in the vindictiveness of a long
forgotten
cause--a blaze of crimson scimitar thorns from root to topmost
twig;
and down again in the cool hollows were lady-bushes making twilight
of
the green gloom with their cloudy ivory blossoms and filling the
shadows
with such a heavy scent that head and heart reeled with fatal
pleasure
as one pushed aside their branches. Every river-bed was full
of mighty
reeds, whose stems clattered together when the wind blew like
swords on
shields, and every now and then a bit of forest was woven together
with
the ropey stems of giant creepers till no man or beast could have
passed
save for the paths which constant use had kept open through the
mazes.
All day long I wandered on through those wonderful woodlands, and in
fact
loitered so much over their infinite marvels that when sundown came
all
too soon there was still undulating forest everywhere, vistas of
fairy
glades on every hand, peopled with incredible things and echoing
with
sounds that excited the ears as much as other things fascinated the
eyes,
but no sign of the sea or my fishing village anywhere.
It did not matter; a little of the Martian leisureliness was getting
into
my blood: "If not today, why then tomorrow," as An would have said;
and with
this for comfort I selected a warm, sandy hollow under the roots
of a big
tree, made my brief arrangements for the night, ate some honey
cakes, and was
soon sleeping blissfully.
I woke early next morning, after many hours of interrupted dreams,
and
having nothing to do till the white haze had lifted and made it
possible
to start again, rested idly a time on my elbow and watched the
sunshine
filter into the recesses.
Very pretty it was to see the thick canopy overhead, by star-light
so
impenetrable, open its chinks and fissures as the searching sun
came
upon it; to see the pin-hole gaps shine like spangles presently,
the
spaces broaden into lesser suns, and even the thick leafage brighten
and
shine down on me with a soft sea-green radiance. The sunward sides
of
the tree-stems took a glow, and the dew that ran dripping down
their
mossy sides trickled blood-red to earth. Elsewhere the shadows
were
still black, and strange things began to move in them--things we in
our
middle-aged world have never seen the likeness of: beasts half
birds,
birds half creeping things, and creeping things which it seemed to
me
passed through lesser creations down to the basest life that
crawls
without interruption or division.
It was not for me, a sailor, to know much of such things, yet some I
could
not fail to notice. On one grey branch overhead, jutting from
a
tree-stem where a patch of velvet moss made in the morning glint a
fairy bed,
a wonderful flower unfolded. It was a splendid bud, ivory
white,
cushioned in leaves, and secured to its place by naked white
roots that
clipped the branch like fingers of a lady's hand. Even as I
looked it
opened, a pale white star, and hung pensive and inviting on
its mossy
cushion. From it came such a ravishing odour that even I,
at the
further end of the great scale of life, felt my pulses quicken
and my eyes
brighten with cupidity. I was in the very act of climbing
the tree, but
before I could move hand or foot two things happened,
whether you take my
word for them or no.
Firstly, up through a glade in the underwood, attracted by the odour,
came
an ugly brown bird with a capacious beak and shining claws. He
perched
near by, and peeped and peered until he made out the flower pining
on
her virgin stem, whereat off he hopped to her branch and there, with
a
cynical chuckle, strutted to and fro between her and the main stem
like
an ill genius guarding a fairy princess.
Surely Heaven would not allow him to tamper with so chaste a bud!
My hand
reached for a stone to throw at him when happened the second
thing.
There came a gentle pat upon the woodland floor, and from a
tree overhead
dropped down another living plant like to the one above
yet not exactly
similar, a male, my instincts told me, in full solitary
blossom like her
above, cinctured with leaves, and supported by half
a score of thick white
roots that worked, as I looked, like the limbs
of a crab. In a
twinkling that parti-coloured gentleman vegetable
near me was off to the stem
upon which grew his lady love; running
and scrambling, dragging the finery of
his tasselled petals behind,
it was laughable to watch his eagerness.
He got a grip of the tree
and up he went, "hand over hand," root over
root. I had just time to
note others of his species had dropped here
and there upon the ground,
and were hurrying with frantic haste to the same
destination when he
reached the fatal branch, and was straddling victoriously
down it,
blind to all but love and longing. That ill-omened bird who
stood
above the maiden-flower let him come within a stalk's length, so
near
that the white splendour of his sleeping lady gleamed within
arms'
reach, then the great beak was opened, the great claws made a
clutch,
the gallant's head was yanked from his neck, and as it went
tumbling
down the maw of the feathered thing his white legs fell spinning
through
space, and lay knotting themselves in agony upon the ground for a
minute
or two before they relaxed and became flaccid in the repose of
death.
Another and another vegetable suitor made for that fatal tryst, and
as
each came up the snap of the brown bird's beak was all their
obsequies.
At last no more came, and then that Nemesis of claws and quills
walked
over to the girl-flower, his stomach feathers ruffled with
repletion,
the green blood of her lovers dripping from his claws, and pulled
her
golden heart out, tore her white limbs one from the other, and
swallowed
her piecemeal before my very eyes! Then up in wrath I jumped
and yelled
at him till the woods echoed, but too late to stay his
sacrilege.
By this time the sun was bathing everything in splendour, and turning
away
from the wonders about me, I set off at best pace along the
well-trodden
path which led without turning to the west coast village where
the
canoes were.
It proved far closer than expected. As a matter of fact the
forest
in this direction grew right down to the water's edge; the
salt-loving
trees actually overhanging the waves--one of the pleasantest
sights in
nature--and thus I came right out on top of the hamlet before there
had
been an indication of its presence. It occupied two sides of a
pretty
little bay, the third side being flat land given over to the
cultivation
of an enormous species of gourd whose characteristic yellow
flowers and
green, succulent leaves were discernible even at this
distance.
I branched off along the edge of the surf and down a dainty little
flowery
path, noticing meanwhile how the whole bay was filled by hundreds of
empty
canoes, while scores of others were drawn up on the strand, and then
the
first thing I chanced upon was a group of people--youthful, of
course,
with the eternal Martian bloom--and in the splendid simplicity of
almost
complete nakedness. My first idea was that they were bathing,
and fixing
my eyes on the tree-tops with great propriety, I gave a warning
cough.
At that sound instead of getting to cover, or clothes, all started
up
and stood staring for a time like a herd of startled cattle. It
was
highly embarrassing; they were right in the path, a round dozen of
them,
naked and so little ashamed that when I edged away modestly they
began
to run after me. And the farther they came forward the more I
retired,
till we were playing a kind of game of hide-and-seek round the
tree-stems.
In the middle of it my heel caught in a root and down I went very
hard and
very ignominiously, whereon those laughing, light-hearted folk
rushed in,
and with smiles and jests helped me to my feet.
"Was I the traveller who had come from Seth?"
"Yes."
"Oh, then that was well. They had heard such a traveller was on
the
road, and had come a little way down the path, as far as might be
without
fatigue, to meet him."
"Would I eat with them?" these amiable strangers asked, pushing their
soft
warm fingers into mine and ringing me round with a circle. "But
firstly
might they help me out of my clothes? It was hot, and these
things were
cumbersome." As to the eating, I was agreeable enough
seeing how casual
meals had been with me lately, but my clothes, though
Heaven knows they
were getting horribly ragged and travel-stained, I clung to
desperately.
My new friends shrugged their dimpled shoulders and, arguments
being
tedious, at once squatted round me in the dappled shade of a big
tree
and produced their stores of never failing provisions. After a
pleasant
little meal taken thus in the open and with all the simplicity
Martians
delight in, we got to talking about those yellow canoes which
were
bobbing about on the blue waters of the bay.
"Would you like to see where they are grown?" asked an individual
basking
by my side.
"Grown!" I answered with incredulity. "Built, you mean. Never in
my
life did I hear of growing boats."
"But then, sir," observed the girl as she sucked the honey out of
the
stalk of an azure convolvulus flower and threw the remains at a
butterfly
that sailed across the sunshine, "you know so little! You
have come
from afar, from some barbarous and barren district. Here we
undoubtedly
grow our boats, and though we know the Thither folk and such
uncultivated
races make their craft by cumbrous methods of flat planks, yet
we prefer
our own way, for one thing because it saves trouble," and as she
murmured
that all-sufficient reason the gentle damsel nodded
reflectively.
But one of her companions, more lively for the moment, tickled her with
a
straw until she roused, and then said, "Let us take the stranger to the
boat
garden now. The current will drift us round the bay, and we can
come
back when it turns. If we wait we shall have to row in both
directions,
or even walk," and again planetary slothfulness carried the
day.
So down to the beach we strolled and launched one of the
golden-hued
skiffs upon the pretty dancing wavelets just where they ran,
lipped
with jewelled spray, on the shore, and then only had I a chance
to
scrutinise their material. I patted that one we were upon
inside
and out. I noted with a seaman's admiration its lightness,
elasticity,
and supreme sleekness, its marvellous buoyancy and fairy-like
"lines,"
and after some minutes' consideration it suddenly flashed across me
that
it was all of gourd rind. And as if to supply confirmation, the
flat
land we were approaching on the opposite side of the bay was covered
by
the characteristic verdure of these plants with a touch here and
there
of splendid yellow blossoms, but all of gigantic proportions.
"Ay," said a Martian damsel lying on the bottom, and taking and kissing
my
hand as she spoke, in the simple-hearted way of her people, "I see
you have
guessed how we make our boats. Is it the same in your
distant
country?"
"No, my girl, and what's more, I am a bit uneasy as to what the
fellows on
the Carolina will say if they ever hear I went to sea in
a hollowed-out
pumpkin, and with a young lady--well, dressed as you
are--for crew.
Even now I cannot imagine how you get your ships so
trim and shapely--there
is not a seam or a patch anywhere, it looks as
if you had run them into a
mould."
"That's just what we have done, sir, and now you will witness the
moulds
at work, for here we are," and the little skiff was pulled ashore and
the
Martians and I jumped out on the shelving beach, hauled our boat up
high
and dry, and there right over us, like great green umbrellas, spread
the
fronds of the outmost garden of this strangest of all ship-building
yards.
Briefly, and not to make this part of my story too long, those gilded
boys
and girls took me ashore, and chattering like finches in the
evening,
showed how they planted their gourd seed, nourished the gigantic
plants
as they grew with brackish water and the burnt ashes; then, when
they
flowered, mated the male and female blossoms, glorious funnels of
golden
hue big enough for one to live in; and when the young fruit was of
the
bigness of an ordinary bolster, how they slipped it into a double
mould
of open reed-work something like the two halves of a walnut-shell;
and
how, growing day by day in this, it soon took every curve and line
they
chose to give it, even the hanging keel below, the strengthened
bulwarks,
and tall prow-piece. It was so ingenious, yet simple; and I
confess I
laughed over my first skiff "on the stalk," and fell to bantering
the
Martians, asking whether it was a good season for navies, whether
their
Cunarders were spreading nicely, if they could give me a pinch of
barge
seed, or a yacht in bud to show to my friends at home.
But those lazy people took the matter seriously enough. They led
me
down green alleys arched over with huge melon-like leaves; they led
me
along innumerable byways, making me peep and peer through the
chequered
sunlight at ocean-growing craft, that had budded twelve months
before,
already filling their moulds to the last inch of space. They
told me
that when the growing process was sufficiently advanced, they
loosened
the casing, and cutting a hole into the interior of each giant
fruit,
scooped out all its seed, thereby checking more advance, and
throwing
into the rind strength that would otherwise have gone to
reproductiveness.
They said each fruit made two vessels, but the upper half
was always best
and used for long salt-water journeys, the lower piece being
but for
punting or fishing on their lakes. They cut them in half while
still
green, scraped out the light remaining pulp when dry, and dragged
them
down with the minimum of trouble, light as feathers, tenacious as
steel
plate, and already in the form and fashion of dainty craft from five
to
twenty feet in length, when the process was completed.
By the time we had explored this strangest of ship-building yards, and
I
had seen last year's crop on the stocks being polished and fitted with
seats
and gear, the sun was going down; and the Martian twilight, owing
to the
comparative steepness of the little planet's sides, being brief,
we strolled
back to the village, and there they gave me harbourage for the
night,
ambrosial supper, and a deep draught of the wine of Forgetfulness,
under the
gauzy spell of which the real and unreal melted into the vistas
of rosy
oblivion, and I slept.
CHAPTER XI
With the new morning came fresh energy and a spasm of conscience as
I
thought of poor Heru and the shabby sort of rescuer I was to lie
about
with these pretty triflers while she remained in peril.
So I had a bath and a swim, a breakfast, and, to my shame be
it
acknowledged, a sort of farewell merry-go-round dance on the
yellow
sands with a dozen young persons all light-hearted as the
morning,
beautiful as the flowers that bound their hair, and in the extremity
of
statuesque attire.
Then at last I got them to give me a sea-going canoe, a stock of cakes
and
fresh water; and with many parting injunctions how to find the
Woodman
trail, since I would not listen to reason and lie all the rest of
my
life with them in the sunshine, they pushed me off on my lonely
voyage.
"Over the blue waters!" they shouted in chorus as I dipped my paddle
into
the diamond-crested wavelets. "Six hours, adventurous stranger,
with the
sun behind you! Then into the broad river behind the yellow
sand-bar.
But not the black northward river! Not the strong, black
river, above
all things, stranger! For that is the River of the Dead,
by which many
go but none come back. Goodbye!" And waving them
adieu, I sternly turned
my eyes from delights behind and faced the
fascination of perils in front.
In four hours (for the Martians had forgotten in their calculations
that
my muscles were something better than theirs) I "rose" the further
shore,
and then the question was, Where ran that westward river of
theirs?
It turned out afterwards that, knowing nothing of their tides, I
had
drifted much too far to northward, and consequently the coast had
closed
up the estuary mouth I should have entered. Not a sign of an
opening
showed anywhere, and having nothing whatever for guidance I
turned
northward, eagerly scanning an endless line of low cliffs, as the
day
lessened, for the promised sand-bar or inlet.
About dusk my canoe, flying swiftly forward at its own sweet will,
brought
me into a bight, a bare, desolate-looking country with no vegetation
save
grass and sedge on the near marshes and stony hills rising up
beyond,
with others beyond them mounting step by step to a long line of
ridges
and peaks still covered in winter snow.
The outlook was anything but cheering. Not a trace of habitation had
been
seen for a long time, not a single living being in whose neighbourhood
I
could land and ask the way; nothing living anywhere but a monstrous
kind
of sea-slug, as big as a dog, battening on the waterside garbage,
and
gaunt birds like vultures who croaked on the mud-flats, and
half-spread
wings of funereal blackness as they gambolled here and
there. Where was
poor Heru? Where pink-shouldered An? Where
those wild men who had
taken the princess from us? Lastly, but not
least, where was I?
All the first stars of the Martian sky were strange to me, and my
boat
whirling round and round on the current confused what little
geography
I might otherwise have retained. It was a cheerless look out,
and again
and again I cursed my folly for coming on such a fool's errand as I
sat,
chin in hand, staring at a landscape that grew more and more
depressing
every mile. To go on looked like destruction, to go back was
almost
impossible without a guide; and while I was still wondering which of
the
two might be the lesser evil, the stream I was on turned a corner, and
in
a moment we were upon water which ran with swift, oily smoothness
straight
for the snow-ranges now beginning to loom unpleasantly close
ahead.
By this time the night was coming on apace, the last of the
evil-looking
birds had winged its way across the red sunset glare, and though
it was
clear enough in mid-river under the banks, now steep and
unclimbable,
it was already evening.
And with the darkness came a wondrous cold breath from off the
ice-fields,
blowing through my lowland wrappings as though they were but
tissue.
I munched a bit of honey-cake, took a cautious sip of wine, and
though I
will not own I was frightened, yet no one will deny that the
circumstances
were discouraging.
Standing up in the frail canoe and looking around, at the second glance
an
object caught my eye coming with the stream, and rapidly overtaking me
on a
strong sluice of water. It was a raft of some sort, and
something
extra-ordinarily like a sitting Martian on it! Nearer and
nearer it came,
bobbing to the rise and fall of each wavelet with the last
icy sunlight
touching it up with reds and golds, nearer and nearer in the
deadly
hush of that forsaken region, and then at last so near it showed
quite
plainly on the purple water, a raft with some one sitting under a
canopy.
With a thrill of delight I waved my cap aloft and shouted--
"Ship-ahoy! Hullo, messmate, where are we bound to?"
But never an answer came from that swiftly-passing stranger, so again
I
hailed--
"Put up your helm, Mr. Skipper; I have lost my bearings, and
the
chronometer has run down," but without a pause or sound that
strange
craft went slipping by.
That silence was more than I could stand. It was against all
sea
courtesies, and the last chance of learning where I was passing
away.
So, angrily the paddle was snatched from the canoe bottom, and
roaring
out again--
"Stop, I say, you d----- lubber, stop, or by all the gods I will
make
you!" I plunged the paddle into the water and shot my little
craft
slantingly across the stream to intercept the newcomer. A single
stroke
sent me into mid-stream, a second brought me within touch of that
strange
craft. It was a flat raft, undoubtedly, though so disguised
by flowers
and silk trailers that its shape was difficult to make out.
In the centre was
a chair of ceremony bedecked with greenery and great
pale buds, hardly yet
withered--oh, where had I seen such a chair and
such a raft before?
And the riddle did not long remain unanswered. Upon that seat, as
I
swept up alongside and laid a sunburnt hand upon its edge, was a
girl,
and another look told me she was dead!
Such a sweet, pallid, Martian maid, her fair head lolling back against
the
rear of the chair and gently moving to and fro with the rise and fall
of
her craft. Her face in the pale light of the evening like carved
ivory,
and not less passionless and still; her arms bare, and her poor
fingers
still closed in her lap upon the beautiful buds they had put into
them.
I fairly gasped with amazement at the dreadful sweetness of
that
solitary lady, and could hardly believe she was really a corpse!
But,
alas! there was no doubt of it, and I stared at her, half in
admiration
and half in fear; noting how the last sunset flush lent a hectic
beauty
to her face for a moment, and then how fair and ghostly she stood
out
against the purpling sky; how her light drapery lifted to the icy
wind,
and how dreadfully strange all those soft-scented flowers and
trappings
seemed as we sped along side by side into the country of night and
snow.
Then all of a sudden the true meaning of her being there burst upon
me,
and with a start and a cry I looked around. WE WERE FLYING
SWIFTLY
DOWN THAT RIVER OF THE DEAD THEY HAD TOLD ME OF THAT HAS NO OUTLET
AND
NO RETURNING!
With frantic haste I snatched up a paddle again and tried to
paddle
against the great black current sweeping us forward. I worked
until the
perspiration stood in beads on my forehead, and all the time I
worked
the river, like some black snake, hissed and twined, and that pretty
lady
rode cheerily along at my side. Overhead stars of unearthly
brilliancy
were coming out in the frosty sky, while on either hand the banks
were
high and the shadows under them black as ink. In those shadows now
and
then I noticed with a horrible indifference other rafts were
travelling,
and presently, as the stream narrowed, they came out and joined
us,
dead Martians, budding boys and girls; older voyagers with their
age
quickening upon them in the Martian manner, just as some fruit
only
ripens after it falls; yellow-girt slaves staring into the night in
front,
quite a merry crew all clustered about I and that gentle lady, and
more
far ahead and more behind, all bobbing and jostling forward as we
hurried
to the dreadful graveyard in the Martian regions of eternal winter
none
had ever seen and no one came to! I cried aloud in my desolation
and
fear and hid my face in my hands, while the icy cliffs mocked my cry
and
the dead maid, tripping alongside, rolled her head over, and stared
at
me with stony, unseeing eyes.
Well, I am no fine writer. I sat down to tell a plain,
unvarnished
tale, and I will not let the weird horror of that ride get into
my pen.
We careened forward, I and those lost Martians, until pretty near
on
midnight, by which time the great light-giving planets were up, and
never
a chance did Fate give me all that time of parting company with
them.
About midnight we were right into the region of snow and ice, not
the
actual polar region of the planet, as I afterwards guessed, but one
of
those long outliers which follow the course of the broad waterways
almost
into fertile regions, and the cold, though intense, was somewhat
modified by
the complete stillness of the air.
It was just then that I began to be aware of a low, rumbling sound
ahead,
increasing steadily until there could not be any doubt the
journey
was nearly over and we were approaching those great falls An had
told
me of, over which the dead tumble to perpetual oblivion. There
was
no opportunity for action, and, luckily, little time for thought.
I
remember clapping my hand to my heart as I muttered an imperfect
prayer, and
laughing a little as I felt in my pocket, between it and that
organ, an
envelope containing some corn-plaster and a packet of unpaid
tailors'
bills. Then I pulled out that locket with poor forgotten
Polly's
photograph, and while I was still kissing it fervently, and the dead
girl
on my right was jealously nudging my canoe with the corner of her raft,
we
plunged into a narrow gully as black as hell, shot round a sharp corner
at
a tremendous pace, and the moment afterwards entered a lake in the
midst
of an unbroken amphitheatre of cliffs gleaming in soft light all
round.
Even to this moment I can recall the blue shine of those terrible
ice
crags framing the weird picture in on every hand, and the strange
effect
upon my mind as we passed out of the darkness of the gully down
which
we had come into the sepulchral radiance of that place. But
though it
fixed with one instantaneous flash its impression on my mind
forever,
there was no time to admire it. As we swept on to the lake's
surface,
and a glance of light coming over a dip in the ice walls to the left
lit
up the dead faces and half-withered flowers of my fellow-travellers
with
startling distinctness, I noticed with a new terror at the lower end
of
the lake towards which we were hurrying the water suddenly
disappeared
in a cloud of frosty spray, and it was from thence came the low,
ominous
rumble which had sounded up the ravine as we approached. It was
the
fall, and beyond the stream dropped down glassy step after step,
in
wild pools and rapids, through which no boat could live for a
moment,
to a black cavern entrance, where it was swallowed up in eternal
night.
I WOULD not go that way! With a yell such as those solitudes
had
probably never heard since the planet was fashioned out of the void,
I
seized the paddle again and struck out furiously from the main
current,
with the result of postponing the crisis for a time, and finding
myself
bobbing round towards the northern amphitheatre, where the light
fell
clearest from planets overhead. It was like a great ballroom
with
those constellations for tapers, and a ghastly crowd of Martians
were
doing cotillions and waltzes all about me on their rafts as the
troubled
water, icy cold and clear as glass, eddied us here and there in
solemn
confusion. On the narrow beaches at the cliff foot were hundreds
of
wrecked voyagers--the wall-flowers of that ghostly assembly-room--and
I
went jostling and twirling round the circle as though looking for a
likely
partner, until my brain spun and my heart was sick.
For twenty minutes Fate played with me, and then the deadly suck of
the
stream got me down again close to where the water began to race
for
the falls. I vowed savagely I would not go over them if it could
be
helped, and struggled furiously.
On the left, in shadow, a narrow beach seemed to lie between the water
and
the cliff foot; towards it I fought. At the very first stroke I
fouled
a raft; the occupant thereof came tumbling aboard and nearly swamped
me.
But now it was a fight for life, so him I seized without ceremony
by
clammy neck and leg and threw back into the water. Then another
playful
Martian butted the behind part of my canoe and set it spinning, so
that
all the stars seemed to be dancing giddily in the sky. With a yell
I
shoved him off, but only to find his comrades were closing round me in
a
solid ring as we sucked down to the abyss at ever-increasing speed.
Then I fought like a fury, hacking, pushing, and paddling
shorewards,
crying out in my excitement, and spinning and bumping and
twisting
ever downwards. For every foot I gained they pushed me on a
yard,
as though determined their fate should be mine also.
They crowded round me in a compact circle, their poor flower-girt
heads
nodding as the swift current curtsied their crafts. They hemmed
me in
with desperate persistency as we spun through the ghostly starlight in
a
swirling mass down to destruction! And in a minute we were so close
to
the edge of the fall I could see the water break into ridges as it
felt
the solid bottom give way under it. We were so close that already
the
foremost rafts, ten yards ahead, were tipping and their occupants
one
by one waving their arms about and tumbling from their funeral chairs
as
they shot into the spray veil and went out of sight under a faint
rainbow
that was arched over there, the symbol of peace and the only lovely
thing
in that gruesome region. Another minute and I must have gone with
them.
It was too late to think of getting out of the tangle then; the
water
behind was heavy with trailing silks and flowers. We were jammed
together
almost like one huge float and in that latter fact lay my one
chance.
On the left was a low ledge of rocks leading back to the narrow
beach
already mentioned, and the ledge came out to within a few feet of
where
the outmost boat on that side would pass it. It was the only
chance and
a poor one, but already the first rank of my fleet was trembling
on the
brink, and without stopping to weigh matters I bounded off my own
canoe
on to the raft alongside, which rocked with my weight like a
tea-tray.
From that I leapt, with such hearty good-will as I had never had
before,
on to a second and third. I jumped from the footstool of one
Martian
to the knee of another, steadying myself by a free use of their
nodding
heads as I passed. And every time I jumped a ship collapsed
behind me.
As I staggered with my spring into the last and outermost boat the
ledge
was still six feet away, half hidden in a smother of foam, and the rim
of
the great fall just under it. Then I drew all my sailor agility
together
and just as the little vessel was going bow up over the edge I leapt
from
her--came down blinded with spray on the ledge, rolled over and
over,
clutched frantically at the frozen soil, and was safe for the
moment,
but only a few inches from the vortex below!
As soon as I picked myself up and got breath, I walked shorewards
and
found, with great satisfaction, that the ledge joined the shelving
beach,
and so walked on in the blue obscurity of the cliff shadow back from
the
falls in the bare hope that the beach might lead by some way into
the
gully through which we had come and open country beyond. But after
a
couple of hundred yards this hope ended as abruptly as the spit
itself
in deep water, and there I was, as far as the darkness would allow
me
to ascertain, as utterly trapped as any mortal could be.
I will not dwell on the next few minutes, for no one likes to
acknowledge
that he has been unmanned even for a space. When those
minutes were
over calmness and consideration returned, and I was able to look
about.
All the opposite cliffs, rising sheer from the water, were in light,
their
cold blue and white surfaces rising far up into the black
starfields
overhead. Looking at them intently from this vantage-point I
saw without
at first understanding that along them horizontally, tier above
tier,
were rows of objects, like--like--why, good Heavens, they were like
men
and women in all sorts of strange postures and positions! Rubbing
my
eyes and looking again I perceived with a start and a strange
creepy
feeling down my back that they WERE men and women!--hundreds of
them,
thousands, all in rows as cormorants stand upon sea-side cliffs,
myriads
and myriads now I looked about, in every conceivable pose and
attitude
but never a sound, never a movement amongst the vast concourse.
Then I turned back to the cliffs behind me. Yes! they ere there
too,
dimmer by reason of the shadows, but there for certain, from the
snowfields
far above down, down--good Heavens! to the very level where
I stood.
There was one of them not ten yards away half in and half out
of the ice
wall, and setting my teeth I walked over and examined him.
And there was
another further in behind as I peered into the clear blue
depth, another
behind that one, another behind him--just like cherries
in a jelly.
It was startling and almost incredible, yet so many wonderful things
had
happened of late that wonders were losing their sharpness, and I was
soon
examining the cliff almost as coolly as though it were only some
trivial
geological "section," some new kind of petrified sea-urchins which
had
caught my attention and not a whole nation in ice, a huge
amphitheatre
of fossilised humanity which stared down on me.
The matter was simple enough when you came to look at it with
philosophy.
The Martians had sent their dead down here for many thousand
years and
as they came they were frozen in, the bands and zones in which
they
sat indicating perhaps alternating seasons. Then after Nature had
been
storing them like that for long ages some upheaval happened, and
this
cleft and lake opened through the heart of the preserve. Probably
the
river once ran far up there where the starlight was crowning the
blue
cliffs with a silver diadem of light, only when this hollow opened
did
it slowly deepen a lower course, spreading out in a lake, and
eventually
tumbling down those icy steps lose itself in the dark roots of the
hills.
It was very simple, no doubt, but incredibly weird and wonderful to me
who
stood, the sole living thing in that immense concourse of dead
humanity.
Look where I would it was the same everywhere. Those endless rows
of
frozen bodies lying, sitting, or standing stared at me from every
niche and
cornice. It almost seemed, as the light veered slowly round,
as though
they smiled and frowned at times, but never a word was there
amongst those
millions; the silence itself was audible, and save the dull
low thunder of
the fall, so monotonous the ear became accustomed to and
soon disregarded it,
there was not a sound anywhere, not a rustle, not
a whisper broke the eternal
calm of that great caravansary of the dead.
The very rattle of the shingle under my feet and the jingle of my
navy
scabbard seemed offensive in the perfect hush, and, too awed
to be
frightened, I presently turned away from the dreadful shine of
those cliffs
and felt my way along the base of the wall on my own side.
There was no means
of escape that way, and presently the shingle beach
itself gave out as
stated, where the cliff wall rose straight from the
surface of the lake, so I
turned back, and finding a grotto in the ice
determined to make myself as
comfortable as might be until daylight came.
CHAPTER XII
Fortunately there was a good deal of broken timber thrown up
at
"high-water" mark, and with a stack of this at the mouth of the
little
cave a pleasant fire was soon made by help of a flint pebble and
the
steel back of my sword. It was a hearty blaze and lit up all the
near
cliffs with a ruddy jumping glow which gave their occupants a
marvellous
appearance of life. The heat also brought off the dull rime
upon the
side of my recess, leaving it clear as polished glass, and I was a
little
startled to see, only an inch or so back in the ice and standing as
erect
as ever he had been in life, the figure of an imposing grey clad
man.
His arms were folded, his chin dropped upon his chest, his robes
of
the finest stuff, the very flowers they had decked his head with
frozen
with immortality, and under them, round his crisp and iron-grey
hair,
a simple band of gold with strange runes and figures engraved upon
it.
There was something very simple yet stately about him, though his face
was
hidden and as I gazed long and intently the idea got hold of me that
he
had been a king over an undegenerate Martian race, and had stood
waiting
for the Dawn a very, very long time.
I wished a little that he had not been quite so near the glassy surface
of
the ice down which the warmth was bringing quick moisture drops.
Had he been
back there in the blue depths where others were sitting and
crouching it
would have been much more comfortable. But I was a sailor,
and
misfortune makes strange companions, so I piled up the fire again,
and lying
down presently on the dry shingle with my back to him stared
moodily at the
blaze till slowly the fatigues of the day told, my eyelids
dropped and, with
many a fitful start and turn, at length I slept.
It was an hour before dawn, the fire had burnt low and I was dreaming
of
an angry discussion with my tailor in New York as to the sit of my
last
new trousers when a faint sound of moving shingle caught my quick
seaman
ear, and before I could raise my head or lift a hand, a man's weight
was
on me--a heavy, strong man who bore me down with irresistible force.
I
felt the slap of his ice-cold hand upon my throat and his teeth in
the back
of my neck! In an instant, though but half awake, with a yell
of
surprise and anger I grappled with the enemy, and exerting all my
strength
rolled him over. Over and over we went struggling towards the
fire, and
when I got him within a foot or so of it I came out on top,
and, digging my
knuckles into his throttle, banged his head upon the
stony floor in reckless
rage, until all of a sudden it seemed to me
he was done for. I relaxed
my grip, but the other man never moved.
I shook him again, like a terrier
with a rat, but he never resented it.
Had I killed him? How limp and cold he
was! And then all of a sudden
an uneasy feeling came upon me. I
reached out, and throwing a handful
of dried stuff upon the embers the fire
danced gaily up into the air,
and the blaze showed me I was savagely holding
down to the gravel and
kneeling on the chest of that long-dead king from my
grotto wall!
It was the man out of the ice without a doubt. There was the very
niche
he had fallen from under the influence of the fire heat, the very
recess,
exactly in his shape in every detail, whence he had stood gazing
into
vacuity all those years. I left go my hold, and after the flutter
in
my heart had gone down, apologetically set him up against the wall
of
the cavern whence he had fallen; then built up the fire until
twirling
flames danced to the very roof in the blue light of dawn, and
hobgoblin
shadows leapt and capered about us. Then once more I sat down
on the
opposite side of the blaze, resting my chin upon my hands, and
stared
into the frozen eyes of that grim stranger, who, with his chin upon
his
knees, stared back at me with irresistible, remorseless
steadfastness.
He was as fresh as if he had died but yesterday, yet by his clothing
and
something in his appearance, which was not that of the Martian of
to-day,
I knew he might be many thousand years old. What things he had
seen,
what wonders he knew! What a story might be put into his mouth if
I
were a capable writer gifted with time and imagination instead of a
poor
outcast, ill-paid lieutenant whose literary wit is often taxed
hardly
to fill even a log-book entry! I stared at him so long and hard,
and
he at me through the blinking flames, that again I dozed--and
dozed--and
dozed again until at last when I woke in good earnest it was
daylight.
By this time hunger was very aggressive. The fire was naught but
a
circlet of grey ashes; the dead king, still sitting against the
cave-side,
looked very blue and cold, and with an uncomfortable realisation
of my
position I shook myself together, picked up and pocketed without
much
thought the queer gold circlet that had dropped from his
forehead,
and went outside to see what prospect of escape the new day had
brought.
It was not much. Upriver there was not the remotest chance. Not
even
a Niagara steamer could have forged back against the sluice
coming
down from the gulch there. Looking round, the sides of the
icy
amphitheatre--just lighting up now with glorious gold and
crimson
glimmers of morning--were as steep as a wall face; only back
towards
the falls was there a possibility of getting out of the dreadful
trap,
so thither I went, after a last look at the poor old king, along
my
narrow beach with all the eagerness begotten of a final chance. Up
to
the very brink it looked hopeless enough, but, looking downwards
when
that was reached, instead of a sheer drop the slope seemed to be a
wild
"staircase" of rocks and icy ledges with here and there a little
patch
of sand on a cornice, and far below, five hundred feet or so, a
good
big spread of gravel an acre or two in extent close by where the
river
plunged out of sight into the nethermost cavern mouth.
It was so hopeless up above it, it could not possibly be worse
further
down, and there was the ugly black flood running into the hole to
trust
myself to as a last resource; so slipping and sliding I began the
descent.
Had I been a schoolboy with a good breakfast ahead the incident might
have
been amusing enough. The travelling was mostly done on the seat of
my
trousers, which consequently became caked with mud and glacial loam.
Some was
accomplished on hands and knees, with now and then a bit down
a snow slope,
in good, honest head-over-heels fashion. The result was
a fine appetite
for the next meal when it should please providence to
send it, and an abrupt
arrival on the bottom beach about five minutes
after leaving the upper
circles.
I came to behind a cluster of breast-high rocks, and before moving
took a
look round. Judge then of my astonishment and delight at the
second
glance to perceive about a hundred yards away a brown object,
looking like an
ape in the half light, meandering slowly up the margin
of the water towards
me. Every now and then it stopped, stooping down
to pick up something
or other from the scum along the torrent, and it
was the fact that these
trifles, whatever they were, were put into a
wallet by the vision's side--not
into his mouth--which first made me
understand with a joyful thrill that it
was a MAN before me--a real,
living man in this huge chamber of dead
horrors! Then again it flashed
across my mind in a luminous moment that
where one man could come, or go,
or live, another could do likewise, and
never did cat watch mouse with
more concentrated eagerness than I that
quaint, bent-shouldered thing
hobbling about in the blue morning shadows
where all else was silence.
Nearer and nearer he came, till so close face and garb were
discernible,
and then there could no longer be any doubt, it was a woodman,
an old man,
with grizzled monkey-face, stooping gait, and a shaggy fur cloak,
utterly
unlike the airy garments of my Hither folk, who now stood before
me.
It gave me quite a start to recognise him there, for it showed I was
in
a new land, and since he was going so cheerfully about his
business,
whatever it might chance to be, there must be some way out of
this
accursed pit in which I had fallen. So very cautiously I edged
out,
taking advantage of all the cover possible until we were only
twenty
yards apart, and then suddenly standing up, and putting on the
most
affable smile, I called out--
"Hullo, mess-mate!"
The effect was electrical. That quaint old fellow sprang a yard
into
air as though a spring had shot him up. Then, coming down, he
stood
transfixed at his full height as stiff as a ramrod, staring at
me
with incredible wonder. He looked so funny that in spite of
hunger
and loneliness I burst out laughing, whereat the woodman,
suddenly
recovering his senses, turned on his heels and set off at his best
pace
in the opposite direction. This would never do! I wanted him
to be my
guide, philosopher, and friend. He was my sole visible link
with the
outside world, so after him I went at tip-top speed, and catching
him
up in fifty yards along the shingle laid hold of his nether
garments.
Whereat the old fellow stopping suddenly I shot clean over his
back,
coming down on my shoulder in the gravel.
But I was much younger than he, and in a minute was in chase again.
This
time I laid hold of his cloak, and the moment he felt my grip
he slipped the
neck-thongs and left me with only the mangy garment in
my hands. Again
we set off, dodging and scampering with all our might
upon that frozen bit of
beach. The activity of that old fellow was
marvellous, but I could not
and would not lose him. I made a rush and
grappled him, but he tossed
his head round and slipped away once more
under my arm, as though he had been
brought up by a Chinese wrestler.
Then he got on one side of a flat rock, I
the other, and for three or
four minutes we waltzed round that slab in the
most insane manner.
But by this time we were both pretty well spent--he with age and I
with
faintness from my long fast, and we came presently to a standstill.
After glaring at me for a time, the woodman gasped out as he struggled
for
breath--
"Oh, mighty and dreadful spirit! Oh, dweller in primordial ice,
say
from which niche of the cliffs has the breath of chance thawed you?"
"Never a niche at all, Mr. Hunter-for-Haddocks'-Eyes," I answered
as
soon as I could speak. "I am just a castaway wrecked last night on
this
shore of yours, and very grateful indeed will I be if you can show
me
the way to some breakfast first, and afterwards to the outside world."
But the old fellow would not believe. "Spirits such as you," he
said
sullenly, "need no food, and go whither they will by wish alone."
"I tell you I am not a spirit, and as hungry as I don't particularly
want
to be again. Here, look at the back of my trousers, caked three
inches
deep in mud. If I were a spirit, do you think I would slide
about on my
coat-tails like that? Do you think that if I could travel
by volition
I would slip down these infernal cliffs on my pants' seat as I
have just
done? And as for materialism--look at this fist; it punched you
just now!
Surely there was nothing spiritual in that knock?''
"No," said the savage, rubbing his head, "it was a good, honest rap,
so I
must take you at your word. If you are indeed man, and hungry,
it will
be a charity to feed you; if you are a spirit, it will at least
be
interesting to watch you eat; so sit down, and let's see what I have
in my
wallet."
So cross-legged we squatted opposite each other on the table rock,
and,
feeling like another Sindbad the Sailor, I watched my new friend
fumble
in his bag and lay out at his side all sorts of odds and ends of
string,
fish-hooks, chewing-gum, material for making a fire, and so on,
until
at last he came to a package (done up, I noted with delight, in a
broad,
green leaf which had certainly been growing that morning), and
unrolling
it, displayed a lump of dried meat, a few biscuits, much thicker
and
heavier than the honey-cakes of the Hither folk, and something
that
looked and smelt like strong, white cheese.
He signed to me to eat, and you may depend upon it I was not slow
in
accepting the invitation. That tough biltong tasted to me like
the
tenderest steak that ever came from a grill; the biscuits were
ambrosial;
the cheese melted in my mouth as butter melts in that of the
virtuous; but
when the old man finished the quaint picnic by inviting me to
accompany
him down to the waterside for a drink, I shook my head. I had
a great
respect for dead queens and kings, I said, but there were too many
of
them up above to make me thirsty this morning; my respect did not go
to
making me desire to imbibe them in solution!
Afterwards I chanced to ask him what he had been picking up just now
along
the margin, and after looking at me suspiciously for a minute he
asked--
"You are not a thief?" On being reassured on that point he
continued:
"And you will not attempt to rob me of the harvest for which I
venture
into this ghost-haunted glen, which you and I alone of living
men
have seen?"
"No." Whatever they were, I said, I would respect his earnings.
"Very well, then," said the old man, "look here! I come hither to
pick
up those pretty trifles which yonder lords and ladies have done
with,"
and plunging his hand into another bag he brought out a perfect
fistful
of splendid gems and jewels, some set and some unset. "They
wash from
the hands and wrists of those who have lodgings in the crevices of
the
falls above," he explained. "After a time the beach here will be
thick
with them. Could I get up whence you came down, they might be
gathered
by the sackful. Come! there is an eddy still unsearched,
and I will
show you how they lie."
It was very fascinating, and I and that old man set to work amongst
the
gravels, and, to be brief, in half an hour found enough glittering
stuff
to set up a Fifth Avenue jeweller's shop. But to tell the truth,
now
that I had breakfasted, and felt manhood in my veins again, I was
eager
to be off, and out of the close, death-tainted atmosphere of that
valley.
Consequently I presently stood up and said--
"Look here, old man, this is fine sport no doubt, but just at present
I
have a big job on hand--one which will not wait, and I must be going.
See,
luck and young eyes have favoured me; here is twice as much gold and
stones
as you have got together--it is all yours without a question if
you will show
me the way out of this den and afterwards put me on the
road to your big
city, for thither I am bound with an errand to your
king, Ar-hap."
The sight of my gems, backed, perhaps, with the mention of Ar-hap's
name,
appealed to the old fellow; and after a grunt or two about "losing a
tide"
just when spoil was so abundant, he accepted the bargain,
shouldered
his belongings, and led me towards the far corner of the
beach.
It looked as if we were walking right against the towering ice wall,
but
when we were within a yard or two of it a narrow cleft, only eighteen
inches
wide, and wonderfully masked by an ice column, showed to the left,
and into
this we squeezed ourselves, the entrance by which we had come
appearing to
close up instantly we had gone a pace or two, so perfectly
did the ice walls
match each other.
It was the most uncanny thoroughfare conceivable--a sheer, sharp crack
in
the blue ice cliffs extending from where the sunlight shone in a
dazzling
golden band five hundred feet overhead to where bottom was
touched in blue
obscurity of the ice-foot. It was so narrow we had to
travel sideways
for the most part, a fact which brought my face close
against the clear blue
glass walls, and enabled me from time to time to
see, far back in those
translucent depths, more and more and evermore
frozen Martians waiting in
stony silence for their release.
But the fact of facts was that slowly the floor of the cleft
trended
upwards, whilst the sky strip appeared to come downwards to meet
it.
A mile, perhaps, we growled and squeezed up that wonderful gully;
then
with a feeling of incredible joy I felt the clear, outer air
smiting
upon me.
In my hurry and delight I put my head into the small of the back of
the
puffing old man who blocked the way in front and forced him
forward,
until at last--before we expected it--the cleft suddenly ended,
and
he and I tumbled headlong over each other on to a glittering,
frozen
snowslope; the sky azure overhead, the sunshine warm as a tepid
bath,
and a wide prospect of mountain and plain extending all around.
So delightful was the sudden change of circumstances that I became
quite
boyish, and seizing the old man in my exuberance by the hands,
dragged
him to his feet, and danced him round and round in a circle,
while
his ancient hair flapped about his head, his skin cloak waved from
his
shoulders like a pair of dusky wings and half-eaten cakes, dried
flesh,
glittering jewels, broken diadems, and golden finger-rings were flung
in
an arc about us. We capered till fairly out of breath, and then,
slapping
him on the back shoulder, I asked whose land all this was about
us.
He replied that it was no one's, all waste from verge to verge.
"What!" was my exclamation. "All ownerless, and with so much
treasure
hidden hereabout! Why, I shall annex it to my country, and you
and I will
peg out original settlers' claims!" And, still excited by
the mountain
air, I whipped out my sword, and in default of a star-spangled
banner
to plant on the newly-acquired territory, traced in gigantic letters
on
the snow-crust--U.S.A.
"And now," I added, wiping the rime off my blade with the lappet of
my
coat, "let us stop capering about here and get to business. You
have
promised to put me on the way to your big city."
"Come on then," said the little man, gathering up his property.
"This
white hillside leads to nowhere; we must get into the valley first,
and then
you shall see your road." And right well that quaint barbarian
kept his
promise.
CHAPTER XIII
It was half a day's march from those glittering snow-fields into the
low
country, and when that was reached I found myself amongst quite
another
people.
The land was no longer fat and flowery, giving every kind of produce
for
the asking, but stony for the most part, and, where we first came
on
vegetation, overgrown by firs, with a pine which looked to me like
a species
which went to make the coal measures in my dear but distant
planet.
More than this I cannot say, for there are no places in the
world like
mess-room and quarter-deck for forgetting school learning.
Instead of the
glorious wealth of parti-coloured vegetation my eyes had
been accustomed to
lately, here they rested on infertile stretches of
marshland intersected by
moss-covered gravel shoots, looking as though
they had been pushed into the
plains in front of extinct glaciers
coming down from the region behind
us. On the low hills away from the
sea those sombre evergreen forests
with an undergrowth of moss and red
lichens were more variegated with light
foliage, and indeed the pines
proved to be but a fringe to the Arctic ice,
giving way rapidly to more
typical Martian vegetation each mile we marched to
the southward.
As for the inhabitants, they seemed, like my guide, rough,
uncouth
fellows, but honest enough when you came to know them. An
introduction,
however, was highly desirable. I chanced upon the first
native as he was
gathering reindeer-moss. My companion was some little
way behind at the
moment, and when the gentle aborigine saw the stranger he
stared hard
for a moment, then, turning on his heels, with extraordinary
swiftness
flung at me half a pound of hard flint stone. Had his aim
been a little
more careful this humble narrative had never appeared on the
Broadway
bookstalls. As it was, the pebble, missing my head by an inch
or two,
splintered into a hundred fragments on a rock behind, and while I
was
debating whether a revengeful rush at the slinger or a strategic
advance
to the rear were more advisable, my guide called out to his
countryman--
"Ho! you base prowler in the morasses; you eater of unclean vegetation,
do
you not see this is a ghost I am conducting, a dweller in the ice
cliffs, a
spirit ten thousand years old? Put by your sling lest he wither
you with a
glance." And, very reasonably, surprised, the aborigine did
as he was
bid and cautiously advanced to inspect me.
The news soon spread over the countryside that my jewel-hunter
was
bringing a live "spook" along with him, considerable curiosity mixed
with
an awe all to my advantage characterising the people we met
thereafter.
Yet the wonder was not so great as might have been expected, for
these
people were accustomed to meeting the tags of lost races, and
though
they stared hard, their interest was chiefly in hearing how, when,
and
where I had been found, whether I bit or kicked, or had any other
vices,
and if I possessed any commercial value.
My guide's throat must have ached with the repetition of the
narrative,
but as he made the story redound greatly to his own glory, he
put
up cheerfully with the hoarseness. In this way, walking and
talking
alternately, we travelled during daylight through a country which
slowly
lost its rugged features and became more and more inhabited, the
hardy
people living in scattered villages in contradiction to the
debased
city-loving Hither folk.
About nightfall we came to a sea-fishers' hamlet, where, after the
old man
had explained my exalted nature and venerable antiquity, I was
offered
shelter for the night.
My host was the headman, and I must say his bearing towards
the
supernatural was most unaffected. If it had been an Avenue hotel I
could
not have found more handsome treatment than in that reed-thatched
hut.
They made me wash and rest, and then were all agog for my history;
but
that I postponed, contenting myself with telling them I had been lately
in
Seth, and had come thence to see them via the ice valley--to all of
which
they listened with the simplicity of children. Afterwards I
turned on
them, and openly marvelled that so small a geographical distance as
there
was between that land and this could make so vast a human
difference.
"The truth, O dweller in blue shadows of primordial ice, is,"
said the
most intelligent of the Thither folk as we sat over fried
deer-steak
in his hut that evening, "we who are MEN, not Peri-zad, not
overstayed
fairies like those you have been amongst, are newcomers here on
this
shore. We came but a few generations ago from where the gold
curtains
of the sun lie behind the westward pine-trees, and as we came we
drove,
year by year, those fays, those spent triflers, back before us.
All this
land was theirs once, and more and more towards our old home.
You may
still see traces of harbours dug and cities built thousands of
years
ago, when the Hither folk were living men and women--not their
shadows.
The big water outside stops us for a space, but," he added,
laughing
gruffly and taking a draught of a strong beer he had been heating by
the
fire, "King Ar-hap has their pretty noses between his fingers; he
takes
tribute and girls while he gets ready--they say he is nearly ready
this
summer, and if he is, it will not be much of an excuse he will need
to
lick up the last of those triflers, those pretences of manhood."
Then we fell to talking of Ar-hap, his subjects and town, and I
learned
the tides had swept me a long way to the northward of the proper
route
between the capitals of the two races, that day they carried me into
the
Dead-Men's Ice, as these entertainers of mine called the northern
snows.
To get back to the place previously aimed at, where the woodmen road
came
out on the seashore, it was necessary to go either by boat, a
roundabout
way through a maze of channels, "as tangled as the grass roots in
autumn";
or, secondly, by a couple of days' marching due southward across
the
base of the great peninsula we were on, and so strike blue water
again
at the long-sought-for harbour.
As I lay dozing and dreaming on a pile of strange furs in the corner
of
the hut that evening I made up my mind for the land journey
tomorrow,
having had enough for the moment of nautical Martian adventures;
and this
point settled, fell again to wondering what made me follow so
reckless
a quest in the way I was doing; asking myself again and again what
was
gazelle-eyed Heru to me after all, and why should it matter even
as
much as the value of a brass waist-coat button whether Hath had her
or
Ar-hap? What a fool I was to risk myself day by day in quaint and
dangerous
adventures, wearing out good Government shoe-leather in other
men's quarrels,
all for a silly slip of royal girlhood who, by this time,
was probably making
herself comfortable and forgetting both Hath and me
in the arms of her rough
new lord.
And from Heru my mind drifted back dreamily to poor An, and Seth, the
city
of fallen magnificence, where the spent masters of a strange planet
now lived
on sufferance--the ghosts of their former selves. Where was
An, where
the revellers on the morning--so long ago it seemed!--when
first that
infernal rug of mine translated a chance wish into a horrible
reality and
shot me down here, a stranger and an outcast? Where was the
magic rug itself?
Where my steak and tomato supper? Who had eaten it? Who
was drawing my pay?
If I could but find the rug when I got back to Seth,
gods! but I would try if
it would not return whence I had come, and as
swiftly, out of all these silly
coils and adventuring.
So musing, presently the firelight died down, and bulky forms
of
hide-wrapped woodmen sleeping on the floor slowly disappeared in
obscurity
like ranges of mountains disappearing in the darkness of
night. All those
uncouth forms, and the throb of the sea outside,
presently faded upon my
senses, and I slept the heavy sleep of one whose
wakefulness gives way
before an imperious physical demand. All through
the long hours of the
night, while the waves outside champed upon the
gravels, and the woodmen
snored and grunted uneasily as they simultaneously
dreamt of the day's
hunting and digested its proceeds, I slept; and then when
dawn began to
break I passed from that heavy stupor into another and lighter
realm,
wherein fancy again rose superior to bodily fatigue, and events of
the
last few days passed in procession through my mind.
I dreamt I was lunching at a fashionable seaside resort with Polly
at my
side, and An kept bringing us melons, which grew so monstrous
every time a
knife was put into them that poor Polly screamed aloud.
I dreamt I was afloat
on a raft, hotly pursued by my tailor, whose bare
and shiny head--may
Providence be good to him!--was garlanded with roses,
while in his fist was a
bunch of unpaid bills, the which he waved aloft,
shouting to me to
stop. And thus we danced down an ink-black river until
he had chiveyed
me into the vast hall of the Admiralty, where a fearsome
Secretary, whose
golden teeth rattled and dropped from his head with
mingled cold and anger,
towered above me as he asked why I was absent
from my ship without
leave. And I was just mumbling out excuses while
stooping to pick up
his golden dentistry, when some one stirring in the
hut aroused me. I
started up on my elbow and looked around. Where was
I? For a minute all
was confused and dark. The heavy mound-like forms of
sleeping men, the
dim outlines of their hunting gear upon the walls, the
pale sea beyond, half
seen through the open doorway, just turning livid
in the morning light; and
then as my eyes grew more accustomed to the
obscurity, and my stupid senses
returned, I recognised the surroundings,
and, with a sigh, remembered
yesterday's adventures.
However, it would never do to mope; so, rising silently and picking
a way
through human lumber on the floor, I went out and down to the
water's edge,
where "shore-going" clothes, as we sailors call them,
were slipped off, and I
plunged into the sea for a swim.
It was a welcome dip, for I needed the plunge physically
and
intellectually, but it came to an abrupt conclusion. The Thither
folk
apparently had never heard of this form of enjoyment; to them water
stood
for drinking or drowning, nothing else, and since one could not drink
the
sea, to be in it meant, even for a ghost, to drown. Consequently,
when
the word went round the just rousing villages that
"He-on-foot-from-afar"
was adrift in the waves, rescue parties were hurriedly
organised, a boat
launched, and, in spite of all my kicking and shouting
(which they took
to be evidence of my semi-moribund condition), I was
speedily hauled out
by hairy and powerful hands, pungent herbs burnt under my
nose, and my
heels held high in the air in order that the water might run out
of me.
It was only with the greatest difficulty those rough but honest
fellows
were eventually got to believe me saved.
The breakfast I made of grilled deer flesh and a fish not unlike
salmon,
however, convinced them of my recovery, and afterward we parted
very
good friends; for there was something in the nature of those
rugged
barbarians just coming into the dawn of civilisation that won my
liking
far more than the effete gentleness of others across the water.
When the time of parting came they showed no curiosity as to my
errand,
but just gave me some food in a fish-skin bag, thrust a heavy
stone-headed
axe into my hand, "in case I had to talk to a thief on the
road," and
pointed out on the southern horizon a forked mountain, under
which,
they said, was the harbour and high-road to King Ar-hap's
capital.
Then they hugged me to their hairy chests in turn, and let me go
with
a traveller's blessing.
There I was again, all alone, none but my thoughts for companions,
and
nothing but youth to excuse the folly in thus venturing on a
reckless
quest!
However, who can gainsay that same youth? The very spice of danger made
my
steps light and the way pleasant. For a mile or two the track was
plain
enough, through an undulating country gradually becoming more and
more
wooded with vegetation, changing rapidly from Alpine to
sub-tropical.
The air also grew warmer, and when the dividing ridge was
crossed and
a thick forest entered, the snows and dreadful region of
Deadmen's Ice
already seemed leagues and leagues away.
Probably a warm ocean current played on one side of the peninsula, while
a
cold one swept the other, but for scientific aspects of the question I
cared
little in my joy at being anew in a soft climate, amongst beautiful
flowers
and vivid life again. Mile after mile slipped quickly by as
I strode
along, whistling "Yankee Doodle" to myself and revelling in
the change.
At one place I met a rough-looking Martian woodcutter,
who wanted to fight
until he found I also wanted to, when he turned
very civil and as talkative
as a solitary liver often is when his tongue
gets started. He
particularly desired to know where I came from, and,
as in the case with so
many other of his countrymen, took it for granted,
and with very little
surprise, that I was either a spirit or an inhabitant
of another world.
With this idea in his mind he gave me a curious piece
of information, which,
unfortunately, I was never able to follow up.
"I don't think you can be a spirit," he said, critically eyeing
my
clothes, which were now getting ragged and dirty beyond
description.
"They are finer-looking things than you, and I doubt if their
toes come
through their shoes like yours do. If you are a wanderer from
the stars,
you are not like that other one we have down yonder," and he
pointed to
the southward.
"What!" I asked, pricking my ears in amazement, "another wanderer from
the
outside world! Does he come from the earth?"--using the word An
had
given me to signify my own planet.
"No, not from there; from the one that burns blue in evening between
sun
and sea. Men say he worked as a stoker or something of the kind
when
he was at home, and got trifling with a volcano tap, and was lapped
in
hot mud, and blown out here. My brother saw him about a week
ago."
"Now what you say is down right curious. I thought I had a monopoly
of
that kind of business in this sphere of yours. I should be
tremendously
interested to see him."
"No you wouldn't," briefly answered the woodman. "He is the
stupidest
fool ever blown from one world to another--more stupid to look at
than
you are. He is a gaseous, wavey thing, so glum you can't get two
words
a week out of him, and so unstable that you never know when you are
with
him and when the breeze has drifted him somewhere else."
I could but laugh and insist, with all respect to the woodcutter, such
an
individual were worth the knowing however unstable his constitution;
at which
the man shrugged his shoulders and changed the conversation,
as though the
subject were too trivial to be worth much consideration.
This individual gave me the pleasure of his company until nearly
sundown,
and finding I took an interest in things of the forest, pointed out
more
curious plants and trees than I have space to mention. Two of
them,
however, cling to my memory very tenaciously. One was a very
Circe
amongst plants, the horrible charm of which can never be
forgotten.
We were going down a glade when a most ravishing odour fell upon
my
nostrils. It was heavenly sweet yet withal there lurked an
incredibly,
unexpressibly tempting spice of wickedness in it. The
moment he caught
that ambrosial invitation in the air my woodman spit
fiercely on the
ground, and taking a plug of wool from his pouch stuffed his
nostrils up.
Then he beckoned me to come away. But the odour was too
ravishing, I was
bound to see whence it arose, and finding me deaf to all
warnings, the
man reluctantly turned aside down the enticing trail. We
pushed about
a hundred yards through bushes until we came to a little arena
full in
sunshine where there were neither birds nor butterflies, but a
death-like
hush upon everything. Indeed, the place seemed shunned in
spite of
the sodden loveliness of that scent which monopolised and mounted to
my
brain until I was beginning to be drunk with the sheer pleasure of
it.
And there in the centre of the space stood a plant not unlike a
tree
fern, about six feet high, and crowned by one huge and lovely
blossom.
It resembled a vast passion-flower of incredible splendour.
There were
four petals, with points resting on the ground, each six feet
long,
ivory-white inside, exquisitely patterned with glittering silver
veins.
From the base of these rose upright a gauzy veil of azure filaments
of
the same length as the petals, wirelike, yet soft as silk, and
inside
them again rested a chalice of silver holding a tiny pool of
limpid
golden honey. Circe, indeed! It was from that cup the
scent arose,
and my throat grew dry with longing as I looked at it; my eyes
strained
through the blue tendrils towards that liquid nectar, and my giddy
senses
felt they must drink or die! I glanced at the woodman with a
smile
of drunken happiness, then turned tottering legs towards the
blossom.
A stride up the smooth causeway of white petals, a push through the
azure
haze, and the wine of the wood enchantress would be mine--molten
amber
wine, hotter and more golden than the sunshine; the fire of it was in
my
veins, the recklessness of intoxication was on me, life itself as
nothing
compared to a sip from that chalice, my lips must taste or my soul
would
die, and with trembling hand and strained face I began to climb.
But the woodman pulled me back.
"Back, stranger!" he cried. "Those who drink there never live again."
"Blessed oblivion! If I had a thousand lives the price were still
too
cheap," and once more I essayed to scramble up.
But the man was a big fellow, and with nostrils plugged, and eyes
averted
from the deadly glamour, he seized me by the collar and threw me
back.
Three times I tried, three times he hurled me down, far too faint
and
absorbed to heed the personal violence. Then standing between
us,
"Look," he said, "look and learn."
He had killed a small ape that morning, meaning later on to take its
fur
for clothing, and this he now unslung from his shoulder, and
hitching
the handle of his axe into the loose skin at the back of its
neck,
cautiously advanced to the witch plant, and gently hoisted the
monkey
over the blue palings. The moment its limp, dead feet touched
the golden
pool a shudder passed through the plant, and a bird somewhere far
back
in the forest cried out in horror. Quick as thought, a spasm of
life
shot up the tendrils, and like tongues of blue flame they closed
round
the victim, lapping his miserable body in their embrace. At the
same
time the petals began to rise, showing as they did so hard,
leathery,
unlovely outer rinds, and by the time the woodman was back at my
side
the flower was closed.
Closer and closer wound the blue tendrils; tighter and tighter closed
the
cruel petals with their iron grip, until at last we heard the ape's
bones
crackling like dry firewood; then next his head burst, his brains
came oozing
through the crevices, while blood and entrails followed
them through every
cranny, and the horrible mess with the overflow of
the chalice curled down
the stem in a hundred steaming rills, till at
last the petals locked with an
ugly snap upon their ghastly meal, and
I turned away from the sight in dread
and loathing.
That was plant Number One.
Plant Number Two was of milder disposition, and won a hearty laugh for
my
friendly woodman. In fact, being of a childlike nature, his success
as
a professor of botany quite pleased him, and not content with
answering
my questions, he set to work to find new vegetable surprises,
greatly
enjoying my wonder and the sense of importance it gave him.
In this way we came, later on in the day, to a spot where herbage
was
somewhat scantier, the grass coarse, and soil shallow. Here I
espied a
tree of small size, apparently withered, but still bearing a few
parched
leaves on its uppermost twigs.
"Now that," quoth the professor, "is a highly curious tree, and I
should
like you to make a close acquaintance with it. It grows from a
seed
in the course of a single springtime, perishes in the summer; but
a
few specimens stand throughout the winter, provided the situation
is
sheltered, as this one has done. If you will kindly go down and
shake
its stem I believe you will learn something interesting."
So, very willing to humour him, away I went to the tree, which was
perfect
in every detail, but apparently very dry, clasped it with both
hands, and,
pulling myself together, gave it a mighty shake. The result
was
instantaneous. The whole thing was nothing but a skin of dust,
whence
all fibre and sap had gone, and at my touch it dissolved into
a cloud of
powder, a huge puff of white dust which descended on me as
though a couple of
flour-bags had been inverted over my head; and as
I staggered out sneezing
and blinking, white as a miller from face to
foot, the Martian burst into a
wild, joyous peal of laughter that made
the woods ring again. His
merriment was so sincere I had not the heart
to be angry, and soon laughed as
loud as he did; though, for the future,
I took his botanical essays with a
little more caution.
CHAPTER XIV
That woodman friend of mine proved so engaging it was difficult to
get
away, and thus when, dusk upon us, and my object still a long
distance
off, he asked me to spend the night at his hut, I gladly
assented.
We soon reached the cabin where the man lived by himself whilst working
in
the forest. It was a picturesque little place on a tree-overhung
lagoon,
thatched, wattled, and all about were piles of a pleasant-scented
bark,
collected for the purpose of tanning hides, and I could not but
marvel
that such a familiar process should be practised identically on two
sides
of the universal ether. But as a matter of fact the similarity of
many
details of existence here and there was the most striking of the
things
I learned whilst in the red planet.
Within the hut stood a hearth in the centre of the floor, whereon
a
comfortable blaze soon sparkled, and upon the walls hung various
implements,
hides, and a store of dried fruits of various novel kinds.
My host, when he
had somewhat disdainfully watched me wash in a rill of
water close by,
suggested supper, and I agreed with heartiest good will.
"Nothing wonderful! Oh, Mr. Blue-coat!" he said, prancing about
as
he made his hospitable arrangements. "No fine meat or scented wine
to
unlock, one by one, all the doors of paradise, such as I have heard
they
have in lands beyond the sea; but fare good enough for plain men
who
eat but to live. So! reach me down yonder bunch of yellow aru
fruit,
and don't upset that calabash, for all my funniest stories lurk at
the
bottom of it."
I did as he bid, and soon we were squatting by the fire toasting arus
on
pointed sticks, the doorway closed with a wattle hurdle, and the
black
and gold firelight filling the hut with fantastic shadows. Then
when
the banana-like fruit was ready, the man fetched from a recess a
loaf
of bread savoured with the dust of dried and pounded fish, put
the
foresaid calabash of strong ale to warm, and down we sat to supper
with
real woodman appetites. Seldom have I enjoyed a meal so much, and
when
we had finished the fruit and the wheat cake my guide snatched up
the
great gourd of ale, and putting it to his lips called out:
"Here's to you, stranger; here's to your country; here's to your girl,
if
you have one, and death to your enemies!" Then he drank deep and
long,
and, passed the stuff to me.
"Here's to you, bully host, and the missus, and the children, if there
are
any, and more power to your elbow!"--the which gratified him greatly,
though
probably he had small idea of my meaning.
And right merry we were that evening. The host was a jolly good
fellow,
and his ale, with a pleasant savour of mint in it, was the heartiest
drink
I ever set lips to. We talked and laughed till the very jackals
yapped in
sympathy outside. And when he had told a score of wonderful
wood stories
as pungent of the life of these fairy forests as the aromatic
scent of
his bark-heaps outside, as iridescent with the colours of another
world
as the rainbow bubbles riding down his starlit rill, I took a
turn,
and told him of the commonplaces of my world so far away, whereat
he
laughed gloriously again. The greater the commonplace the larger his
joy.
The humblest story, hardly calculated to impress a griffin between
watches
on the main-deck, was a masterpiece of wit to that gentle savage;
and
when I "took off" the tricks and foibles of some of my
superiors--Heaven
forgive me for such treason!--he listened with the
exquisite open-mouthed
delight of one who wanders in a brand-new world of
mirth.
We drank and laughed over that strong beer till the little owls
outside
raised their voice in combined accord, and then the woodman, shaking
the
last remnant of his sleepy wits together, and giving a reproachful
look
at me for finally passing him the gourd empty to the last drop,
rose,
threw a fur on a pile of dead grass at one side of the hut, and bid
me
sleep, "for his brain was giddy with the wonders of the incredible
and
ludicrous sphere which I had lately inhabited."
Slowly the fire died away; slowly the quivering gold and black
arabesques
on the walls merged in a red haze as the sticks dropped into
tinder,
and the great black outline of the hairy monster who had thrown
himself
down by the embers rose up the walls against that flush like the
outline
of a range of hills against a sunset glow. I listened drowsily
for
a space to his snoring and the laughing answer of the brook
outside,
and then that ambrosial sleep which is the gentle attendant of
hardship
and danger touched my tired eyelids, and I, too, slept.
My friend was glum the next morning, as they who stay over-long at
the
supper flagon are apt to be. He had been at work an hour on
his
bark-heaps when I came out into the open, and it was only by a good
deal
of diplomacy and some material help in sorting his faggots that he
was
got into a better frame of mind. I could not, however, trust his
mood
completely, and as I did not want to end so jovial a friendship with
a
quarrel, I hurried through our breakfast of dry bread, with
hard-boiled
lizard eggs, and then settling my reckoning with one of the brass
buttons
from my coat, which he immediately threaded, with every evidence
of
extreme gratification, on a string of trinkets hanging round his
neck,
asked him the way to Ar-hap's capital.
"Your way is easy, friend, as long as you keep to the straight path
and
have yonder two-humped mountain in front. To the left is the sea,
and
behind the hill runs the canal and road by which all traffic comes or
goes to
Ar-hap. But above all things pass not to the hills right, for no
man
goes there; there away the forests are thick as night, and in their
perpetual
shadows are the ruins of a Hither city, a haunted fairy town
to which some
travellers have been, but whence none ever returned alive."
"By the great Jove, that sounds promising! I would like to see
that
town if my errand were not so urgent."
But the old fellow shook his shaggy head and turned a shade yellower.
"It
is no place for decent folk," he growled. "I myself once passed
within
a mile of its outskirts at dusk, and saw the unholy little
people's lanterned
processions starting for the shrine of Queen Yang,
who, tradition says,
killed herself and a thousand babies with her when
we took this land."
"My word, that was a holocaust! Couldn't I drop in there to lunch?
It
would make a fine paper for an antiquarian society."
Again the woodman frowned. "Do as I bid you, son. You are too
young
and green to go on ventures by yourself. Keep to the straight
road:
shun the swamps and the fairy forest, else will you never see
Ar-hap."
"And as I have very urgent and very important business with him,
comrade,
no doubt your advice is good. I will call on Princess Yang some
other
day. And now goodbye! Rougher but friendlier shelter than
you
have given me no man could ask for. I am downright sorry to part
with
you in this lonely land. If ever we meet again--" but we never
did!
The honest old churl clasped me into his hairy bosom three
times,
stuffed my wallet with dry fruit and bread, and once more repeating
his
directions, sent me on my lonely way.
I confess I sighed while turning into the forest, and looked back
more
than once at his retreating form. The loneliness of my position,
the
hopelessness of my venture, welled up in my heart after that
good
comradeship, and when the hut was out of sight I went forward down
the
green grass road, chin on chest, for twenty minutes in the
deepest
dejection. But, thank Heaven, I was born with a tough spirit,
and
possess a mind which has learned in many fights to give brave
counsel
to my spirit, and thus presently I shook myself together, setting
my
face boldly to the quest and the day's work.
It was not so clear a morning as the previous one, and a steamy wind
on
what at sea I should have called the starboard bow, as I pressed
forward
to the distant hill, had a curiously subduing effect on my
thoughts,
and filled the forest glades with a tremulous unreality like to
nothing
on our earth, and distinctly embarrassing to a stranger in a
strange
land. Small birds in that quaint atmospheric haze looked like
condors,
butterflies like giant fowl, and the simplest objects of the forest
like
the imaginations of a disordered dream. Behind that gauzy
hallucination
a fine white mist came up, and the sun spread out flat and red
in the sky,
while the pent-in heat became almost unendurable.
Still I plodded on, growling to myself that in Christian latitudes all
the
evidences would have been held to betoken a storm before night,
whatever they
might do here, but for the most part lost in my own
gloomy
speculations. That was the more pity since, in thinking the walk
over
now, it seems to me that I passed many marvels, saw many glorious
vistas
in those nameless forests, many spreads of colour, many incidents
that,
could I but remember them more distinctly, would supply material
for
making my fortune as a descriptive traveller. But what would you?
I
have forgotten, and am too virtuous to draw on my imagination, as it
is
sometimes said other travellers have done when picturesque facts
were
deficient. Yes, I have forgotten all about that day, save that
it was
sultry hot, that I took off my coat and waistcoat to be cooler,
carrying
them, like the tramp I was, across my arm, and thus dishevelled
passed some
time in the afternoon an encampment of forest folk, wherefrom
almost all the
men were gone, and the women shy and surly.
In no very social humour myself, I walked round their woodland
village,
and on the outskirts, by a brook, just as I was wishing there were
some
one to eat my solitary lunch with, chanced upon a fellow busily
engaged
in hammering stones into weapons upon a flint anvil.
He was an ugly-looking individual at best, yet I was hard up for
company,
so I put my coat down, and, seating myself on a log opposite,
proceeded
to open my wallet, and take out the frugal stores the woodman had
given
me that morning.
The man was seated upon the ground holding a stone anvil between his
feet,
while with his hands he turned and chipped with great skill a
spear-head
he was making out of flint. It was about the only pastime he
had, and his
little yellow eyes gleamed with a craftsman's pleasure, his
shaggy round
shoulders were bent over the task, the chips flew in quick
particles,
and the wood echoed musically as the artificer watched the thing
under
his hands take form and fashion. Presently I spoke, and the
worker
looked up, not too pleased at being thus interrupted. But he was
easy
of propitiation, and over a handful of dried raisins communicative.
How, I asked, knowing a craftsman's craft is often nearest to his
heart,
how was it such things as that he chipped came to be thought of by
him
and his? Whereon the woodman, having spit out the raisin-stones
and
wiped his fingers on his fur, said in substance that the first
weapon
was fashioned when the earliest ape hurled the first stone in
wrath.
"But, chum," I said, taking up his half-finished spear and touching
the
razor-fine edge with admiring caution, "from hurling the crude pebble
to
fashioning such as this is a long stride. Who first edged and
pointed
the primitive malice? What man with the soul of a thousand unborn
fighters
in him notched and sharpened your natural rock?"
Whereon the chipper grinned, and answered that, when the woodmen had
found
stones that would crack skulls, it came upon them presently that
they would
crack nuts as well. And cracking nuts between two stones one
day a
flint shattered, and there on the grass was the golden secret of
the
edge--the thing that has made man what he is.
"Yet again, good fellow," I queried, "even this happy chance only gives
us
a weapon, sharp, no doubt, and calculated to do a hundred services
for any
ten the original pebble could have done, but still unhandled,
small in force,
imperfect--now tell me, which of your amiable ancestors
first put a handle to
the fashioned flint, and how he thought of it?"
The workman had done his flake by now, and wrapping it in a bit of
skin,
put it carefully in his belt before turning to answer my question.
"Who made the first handle for the first flint, you of the many
questions?
She did--she, the Mother," he suddenly cried, patting the
earth with his
brown hand, and working himself up as he spoke, "made
it in her heart for us
her first-born. See, here is such as the first
handled weapon that ever
came out of darkness," and he snatched from the
ground, where it had lain
hidden under his fox-skin cloak, a heavy club.
I saw in an instant how it
was. The club had been a sapling, and the
sapling's roots had grown
about and circled with a splendid grip a lump
of native flint. A
woodman had pulled the sapling, found the flint,
and fashioned the two in a
moment of happy inspiration, the one to an
axe-head and the other to a
handle, as they lay Nature-welded!
"This, I say, is the first--the first!" screamed the old fellow as
though
I were contradicting him, thumping the ground with his weapon,
and working
himself up to a fury as its black magic entered his being.
"This is the
first: with this I slew Hetter and Gur, and those who
plundered my
hiding-places in the woods; with this I have killed a score
of others,
bursting their heads, and cracking their bones like dry sticks.
With
this--with this--" but here his rage rendered him inarticulate;
he stammered
and stuttered for a minute, and then as the killing fury
settled on him his
yellow teeth shut with a sudden snap, while through
them his breath rattled
like wind through dead pine branches in December,
the sinews sat up on his
hands as his fingers tightened upon the axe-heft
like the roots of the same
pines from the ground when winter rain has
washed the soil from beneath them;
his small eyes gleamed like baleful
planets; every hair upon his shaggy back
grew stiff and erect--another
minute and my span were ended.
With a leap from where I sat I flew at that hairy beast, and sinking
my
fists deep in his throttle, shook him till his eyes blazed with
delirious
fires. We waltzed across the short greensward, and in and
about the
tree-trunks, shaking, pulling, and hitting as we went, till at last
I felt
the man's vigour dying within him; a little more shaking, a sudden
twist,
and he was lying on the ground before me, senseless and civil!
That is
the worst of some orators, I thought to myself, as I gloomily
gathered
up the scattered fragments of my lunch; they never know when they
have
said enough, and are too apt to be carried away by their own
arguments.
That inhospitable village was left behind in full belief the
mountain
looming in the south could be reached before nightfall, while the
road
to its left would serve as a sure guide to food and shelter for
the
evening. But, as it turned out, the morning's haze developed a
strong
mist ere the afternoon was half gone, through which it was impossible
to
see more than twenty yards. My hill loomed gigantic for a time with
a
tantalising appearance of being only a mile or two ahead, then
wavered,
became visionary, and finally disappeared as completely as though
the
forest mist had drunk it up bodily.
There was still the road to guide me, a fairly well-beaten track
twining
through the glades; but even the best of highways are difficult in
fog,
and this one was complicated by various side paths, made probably
by
hunters or bark-cutters, and without compass or guide marks it
was
necessary to advance with extreme caution, or get helplessly mazed.
An hour's steady tramping brought me nowhere in particular, and
stopping
for a minute to consider, I picked a few wild fruit, such
as my wood-cutter
friend had eaten, from an overhanging bush, and
in so doing slipped, the soil
having now become damp, and in falling
broke a branch off. The incident
was only important from what follows.
Picking myself up, perhaps a little
shaken by the jolt, I set off again
upon what seemed the plain road, and
being by this time displeased by
my surroundings, determined to make a push
for "civilization" before
the rapidly gathering darkness settled down.
Hands in pockets and collar up, I marched forward at a good round pace
for
an hour, constantly straining eyes for a sight of the hill and ears
for some
indications of living beings in the deathly hush of the shrouded
woods, and
at the end of that time, feeling sure habitations must now be
near, arrived
at what looked like a little open space, somehow seeming
rather familiar in
its vague outlines.
Where had I seen such a place before? Sauntering round the margin,
a bush
with a broken branch suddenly attracted my attention--a broken
bush with a
long slide in the mud below it, and the stamp of Navy boots
in the soft
turf! I glared at those signs for a moment, then with an
exclamation of
chagrin recognised them only too well--it was the bush
whence I had picked
the fruit, and the mark of my fall. An hour's hard
walking round some
accursed woodland track had brought me exactly back
to the point I had
started from--I was lost!
It really seemed to get twenty per cent darker as I made that
abominable
discovery, and the position dawned in all its uncomfortable
intensity.
There was nothing for it but to start off again, this time
judging
my direction only by a light breath of air drifting the mist
tangles
before it; and therein I made a great mistake, for the breeze had
shifted
several points from the quarter whence it blew in the morning.
Knowing nothing of this, I went forward with as much lightheartedness
as
could be managed, humming a song to myself, and carefully putting
aside
thoughts of warmth and supper, while the dusk increased and the
great forest
vegetation seemed to grow ranker and closer at every step
Another disconcerting thing was that the ground sloped
gradually
downwards, not upwards as it should have done, till it seemed the
path
lay across the flats of a forest-covered plain, which did not conform
to
my wish of striking a road on the foot-hills of the mountain.
However,
I plodded on, drawing some small comfort from the fact that as
darkness
came the mist rose from the ground and appeared to condense in a
ghostly
curtain twenty feet overhead, where it hung between me and a clear
night
sky, presently illumined by starlight with the strangest effect.
Tired, footsore, and dejected, I struggled on a little further. Oh
for
a cab, I laughed bitterly to myself. Oh for even the humble
necessary
omnibus of civilisation. Oh for the humblest tuck-shop where
a mug of
hot coffee and a snack could be had by a homeless wanderer; and as
I
thought and plodded savagely on, collar up, hands in pockets,
through
the black tangles of that endless wood, suddenly the sound of
wailing
children caught my ear!
It was the softest, saddest music ever mortal listened to. It was
as
though scores of babes in pain were dropping to sleep on their
mothers'
breasts, and all hushing their sorrows with one accord in a
common
melancholy chorus. I stood spell-bound at that elfin wailing,
the first
sound to break the deathly stillness of the road for an hour or
more, and
my blood tingled as I listened to it. Nevertheless, here was
what I was
looking for; where there were weeping children there must be
habitations,
and shelter, and--splendid thought!--supper. Poor little
babes! their
crying was the deadliest, sweetest thing in sorrows I ever
listened to.
If it was cholic--why, I knew a little of medicine, and in
gratitude for
that prospective supper, I had a soul big enough to cure a
thousand; and
if they were in disgrace, and by some quaint Martian fashion
had suffered
simultaneous punishment for baby offences, I would plead for
them.
In fact, I fairly set off at the run towards the sobbing, in the
black,
wet, night air ahead, and, tripping as I ran, looked down and saw
in
the filtering starlight that the forest grass had given place to
an
ancient roadway, paved with moss-grown flag-stones, such as they
still
used in Seth.
Without stopping to think what that might mean I hurried on, the
wailing
now right ahead, a tremulous tumult of gentle grief rising and
falling on
the night air like the sound of a sea after a storm; and so,
presently,
in a minute or two, came upon a ruined archway spanning the lonely
road,
held together by great masses of black-fingered creepers, gaunt
and
ghostly in the shadows, an extraordinary and unexpected vision; and
as
I stopped with a jerk under that forbidding gateway and glared at
its tumbled
masonry and great portals hanging rotten at their hinges,
suddenly the truth
flashed upon me. I had taken the forbidden road
after all. I was
in the ancient, ghost-haunted city of Queen Yang!
CHAPTER XV
The dark forest seemed to shut behind as I entered the gateway of
the
deserted Hither town, against which my wood-cutter friend had warned
me,
while inside the soft mist hung in the starlight like grey drapery
over
endless vistas of ruins. What was I to do? Without all was black
and
cheerless, inside there was at least shelter. Wet and cold, my
courage
was not to be put down by the stories of a silly savage; I would go
on
whatever happened. Besides, the soft sound of crying, now apparently
all
about, seemed companionable, and I had heard so much of ghosts of
late,
the sharp edge of fear at their presence was wearing off.
So in I went: up a broad, decayed street, its flagstones heaved
everywhere
by the roots of gnarled trees, and finding nothing save ruin,
tried to
rest under a wall. But the night air was chilly and the
shelter poor,
so out I came again, with the wailing in the shadows so close
about now
that I stopped, and mustering up courage called aloud:
"Hullo, you who weep there in the dark, are you living or dead?"
And after
a minute from the hollows of the empty hearths around came
the sad little
responsive echo:
"Are you living or dead?" It was very delusive and
unsatisfactory,
and I was wondering what to do next when a slant of warmer
wind came up
behind me under the mist, and immediately little tongues of blue
flame
blossomed without visible cause in every darksome crevice; pale
flickers
of miasmic light rising pallid from every lurking nook and corner in
the
black desolation as though a thousand lamps were lit by unseen
fingers,
and, knee high, floated out into the thoroughfare where they
oscillated
gently in airy grace, and then, forming into procession, began
drifting
before the tepid air towards the city centre. At once I
thought of what
the woodcutter had seen, but was too wet and sulky by this
time to care.
The fascination of the place was on me, and dropping into rear
of the
march, I went forward with it. By this time the wailing had
stopped,
though now and then it seemed a dark form moved in the empty
doorways
on either hand, while the mist, parting into gossamers before the
wind,
took marvellously human forms in every alley and lane we passed.
Thus I, a sodden giant, led by those elfin torches, paced through the
city
until we came to an open square with a great lumber of ruins in the
centre
all marred and spoiled by vegetation; and here the lights wavered,
and went
out by scores and hundreds, just as the petals drop from spent
flowers, while
it seemed, though it may have been only wind in the rank
grass, that the air
was full of most plaintive sighs as each little lamp
slipped into
oblivion.
The big pile was a mass of fallen masonry, which, from the broken
pillars
all about, might have been a palace or temple once. I pushed
in, but it
was as dark as Hades here, so, after struggling for a time in a
labyrinth
of chambers, chose a sandy recess, with some dry herbage by way
of
bedding in a corner, and there, thankful at least for shelter, my
night's
wanderings came to an end and I coiled myself down, ate a last
handful
of dry fruit, and, strange as it may seem, was soon sleeping
peacefully.
I dreamed that night that a woman, with a face as white as ivory, came
and
bent over me. She led a babe by either hand, while behind her
were
scores of other ones, with lovely faces, but all as pale as the
stars
themselves, who looked and sighed, but said nothing, and when they
had
stared their fill, dropped out one by one, leaving a wonderful blank
in
the monotony where they had been; but beyond that dream nothing
happened.
It was a fine morning when I woke again, and obviously broad day
outside,
the sunshine coming down through cracks in the old palace roof,
and
lying in golden pools on the floor with dazzling effect.
Rubbing my eyes and sitting up, it took me some time to get my
senses
together, and at first an uneasy feeling possessed me that I
was
somehow dematerialised and in an unreal world. But a twinge of
cramp
in my left arm, and a healthy sneeze, which frightened a score of
bats
overhead nearly out of their senses, was reassuring on this
point,
and rubbing away the cramp and staggering to my feet, I looked
about
at the strange surroundings. It was cavernous chaos on every
side:
magnificent architecture reduced to the confusion of a debris-heap,
only
the hollow chambers being here and there preserved by massive
columns
meeting overhead. Into these the yellow light filtered wherever
a rent in
a cupola or side-wall admitted it, and allured by the vision of
corridors
one beyond the other, I presently set off on a tour of
discovery.
Twenty minutes' scrambling brought me to a place where the fallen
jambs of
a fine doorway lay so close together that there was barely
room to pass
between them. However, seeing light beyond, I squeezed
through, and I
found myself in the best-preserved chamber of all--a
wide, roomy hall with a
domed roof, a haze of mural paintings on the
walls, and a marble floor nearly
hidden in a century of fallen dust.
I stumbled over something at the
threshold, and picking it up, found it
was a baby's skull! And there
were more of them now that my eyes became
accustomed to the light. The
whole floor was mottled with them--scores
and hundreds of bones and those
poor little relics of humanity jutting
out of the sand everywhere. In
the hush of that great dead nursery the
little white trophies seemed
inexpressibly pathetic, and I should have
turned back reverently from that
chamber of forgotten sorrows but that
something caught my eye in the centre
of it.
It was an oblong pile of white stone, very ill-used and
chipped,
wrist-deep in dust, yet when a slant of light came in from above and
fell
straight upon it, the marble against the black gloom beyond blazed
like
living pearl. It was dazzling; and shading my eyes and going
tenderly
over through the poor dead babes, I looked, and there, full in the
shine,
lay a woman's skeleton, still wrapped in a robe of which little
was
left save the hard gold embroidery. Her brown hair, wonderful to
say,
still lay like lank, dead seaweed about her, and amongst it was a
fillet
crown of plain iron set with gems such as eye never looked upon
before.
There were not many, but enough to make the proud simplicity of
that
circlet glisten like a little band of fire--a gleaming halo on her
dead
forehead infinitely fascinating. At her sides were two other
little
bleached human flowers, and I stood before them for a long time
in
silent sympathy.
Could this be Queen Yang, of whom the woodcutter had told me? It
must
be--who else? And if it were, what strange chance had brought me
here--a
stranger, yet the first to come, since her sorrow, from her
distant
kindred? And if it were, then that fillet belonged of right to
Heru,
the last representative of her kind. Ought I not to take it to
her
rather than leave it as spoil to the first idle thief with pluck
enough
to deride the mysteries of the haunted city? Long time I thought
over
it in the faint, heavy atmosphere of that hall, and then very
gently
unwound the hair, lifted the circlet, and, scarcely knowing what I
did,
put it in my shoulder-bag.
After that I went more cheerfully into the outside sunshine, and
setting
my clothes to dry on a stone, took stock of the situation.
The place was,
perhaps, not quite so romantic by day as by night, and
the scattered trees,
matted by creepers, with which the whole were
overgrown, prevented anything
like an extensive view of the ruined
city being obtained. But what gave
me great satisfaction was to note
over these trees to the eastward a
two-humped mountain, not more than
six or seven miles distant--the very one I
had mislaid the day before.
Here was reality and a chance of getting back to
civilisation. I was as
glad as if home were in sight, and not, perhaps,
the less so because the
hill meant villages and food; and you who have
doubtless lunched well and
lately will please bear in mind I had had nothing
since breakfast the
day before; and though this may look picturesque on
paper, in practice
it is a painful item in one's programme.
Well, I gave my damp clothes but a turn or two more in the sun, and
then,
arguing that from the bare ground where the forest ended half-way
up
the hill, a wide view would be obtained, hurried into my garments
and
set off thither right gleefully. A turn or two down the blank
streets,
now prosaic enough, an easy scramble through a gap in the
crumbling
battlements, and there was the open forest again, with a friendly
path
well marked by the passage of those wild animals who made the city
their
lair trending towards my landmark.
A light breakfast of soft green nuts, plucked on the way, and then
the
ground began to bend upwards and the woods to thin a little.
With infinite
ardour, just before midday, I scrambled on to a bare knoll
on the very
hillside, and fell exhausted before the top could be reached.
But what were hunger or fatigue to the satisfaction of that moment?
There
was the sea before me, the clear, strong, gracious sea, blue
leagues
of it, furrowed by the white ridges of some distant storm. I
could
smell the scent of it even here, and my sailor heart rose in pride
at
the companionship of that alien ocean. Lovely and blessed thing!
how
often have I turned from the shallow trivialities of the land
and
found consolation in the strength of your stately solitudes! How
often
have I turned from the tinselled presence of the shore, the
infinite
pretensions of dry land that make life a sorry, hectic sham, and
found
in the black bosom of the Great Mother solace and comfort! Dear,
lovely
sea, man--half of every sphere, as far removed in the sequence of
your
strong emotions from the painted fripperies of the woman-land as
pole
from pole--the grateful blessing of the humblest of your followers on
you!
The mere sight of salt water did me good. Heaven knows our
separation
had not been long, and many an unkind slap has the Mother given me
in
the bygone; yet the mere sight of her was tonic, a lethe of troubles,
a
sedative for tired nerves; and I gazed that morning at the illimitable
blue,
the great, unfettered road to everywhere, the ever-varied, the
immutable, the
thing which was before everything and shall be last of all,
in an ecstasy of
affection.
There was also other satisfaction at hand. Not a mile away lay
a
well-defined road--doubtless the one spoken of by the
wood-cutter--and
where the track pointed to the seashore the low roofs and
circling smoke
of a Thither township showed.
There I went hot-footed, and, much too hungry to be nice in
formality,
swung up to the largest building on the waterside quay and
demanded
breakfast of the man who was lounging by its doorway chewing a honey
reed.
He looked me up and down without emotion, then, falling into the
common
mistake, said,
"This is not a hostel for ghosts, sir. We do not board and lodge
phantoms
here; this is a dry fish shop."
"Thrice blessed trade!" I answered. "Give me some dried fish,
good
fellow, or, for the matter of that, dried horse or dog, or
anything
mortal teeth can bite through, and I will show you my tastes
are
altogether mundane."
But he shook his head. "This is no place for the likes of you,
who
come, mayhap, from the city of Yang or some other abode of
disembodied
spirits--you, who come for mischief and pay harbourage with
mischance--is
it likely you could eat wholesome food?"
"Indeed I could, and plenty of it, seeing I have dined and
breakfasted
along the hedges with the blackbirds this two days. Look
here, I will
pay in advance. Will that get me a meal?" and, whipping
out my knife,
cut off another of my fast-receding coat buttons.
The man took it with great interest, as I hoped he would, the yellow
metal
being apparently a very scarce commodity in his part of the planet.
"Gold?" he asked.
"Well--ahem! I forgot to ask the man who sewed them on for me what
they
were exactly, but it looks like gold, doesn't it?"
"Yes," he answered, turning it to and fro admiringly in his hand, "you
are
the first ghost I ever knew to pay in advance, and plenty of them go
to and
fro through here. Such a pretty thing is well worth a meal--if,
indeed,
you can stomach our rough fare. Here, you woman within," he
called to
the lady whom I presume was his wife, "here is a gentleman
from the nether
regions who wants some breakfast and has paid in advance.
Give him some of
your best, for he has paid well."
"And what," said a female voice from inside, "what if I refused to
serve
another of these plaguy wanderers you are always foisting upon me?"
"Don't mind her tongue, sir. It's the worst part of her, though she
is
mighty proud of it. Go in and she will see you do not come out
hungry,"
and the Thither man returned calmly to his honey stick.
"Come on, you Soul-with-a-man's-stomach," growled the woman, and
too
hungry to be particular about the tone of invitation, I strode into
the
parlour of that strange refreshment place. The woman was the first
I
had seen of the outer race, and better than might have been expected
in
appearance. Big, strong, and ruddy, she was a mental shock after
the
slender slips of girlhood on the far side of the water, half a
dozen
of whom she could have carried off without effort in her long
arms.
Yet there was about her the credential of rough health, the dignity
of
muscle, an upright carriage, an animal grace of movement, and withal
a
comely though strongly featured face, which pleased me at once, and
later
on I had great cause to remember her with gratitude. She eyed me
sulkily
for a minute, then her frown gradually softened, and the
instinctive
love of the woman for the supernatural mastered her other
feelings.
"Is that how you looked in another world?" she asked.
"Yes, exactly, cap to boots. What do you think of the attire, ma'am?"
"Not much," replied the good woman frankly. "It could not have
been
becoming even when new, and you appear as though you had taken a
muddy
road since then. What did you die of?"
"I will tell you so much as this, madam--that what I am like to die of
now
is hunger, plain, unvarnished hunger, so, in Heaven's name, get out
what you
have and let me fall-to, for my last meal was yesterday morning."
Whereat, with a shrug of her shoulders at the eccentricities of
nether
folk, the woman went to the rear of the house, and presently
came back with a
meal which showed her husband had done scant justice
to the establishment by
calling it a dry fish shop. It is true, fish
supplied the staple of the
repast, as was inevitable in a seaport, but,
like all Martian fish, it was of
ambrosial kind, with a savour about it
of wine and sunshine such as no fish
on our side of space can boast of.
Then there were cakes, steaming and hot,
vegetables which fitted into
the previous course with exquisite nicety, and,
lastly, a wooden tankard
of the invariable Thither beer to finish off.
Such a meal as a hungry
man might consider himself fortunate to meet with any
day.
The woman watched me eat with much satisfaction, and when I had answered
a
score of artless questions about my previous state, or present
condition
and prospects, more or less to her satisfaction, she supplied me in
turn
with some information which was really valuable to me just then.
First I learned that Ar-hap's men, with the abducted Heru, had
passed
through this very port two days before, and by this time were probably
in
the main town, which, it appeared, was only about twelve hours'
rowing
up the salt-water estuary outside. Here was news! Heru,
the prize
and object of my wild adventure, close at hand and well. It
brought
a whole new train of thoughts, for the last few days had been so
full
of the stress of travel, the bare, hard necessity of getting
forward,
that the object of my quest, illogical as it may seem, had gone into
the
background before these things. And here again, as I finished the
last
cake and drank down to the bottom of the ale tankard, the extreme
folly
of the venture came upon me, the madness of venturing single-handed
into
the den of the Wood King. What had I to hope for? What chance,
however
remote, was there of successfully wresting that blooming prize from
the
arms of her captor? Force was out of the question; stealth was
utterly
impractical; as for cajolery, apparently the sole remaining means
of
winning back the Princess--why, one might as well try the persuasion
of
a penny flute upon a hungry eagle as seek to rouse Ar-hap's
sympathies
for bereaved Hath in that way. Surely to go forward would
mean my own
certain destruction, with no advantage, no help to Heru; and if I
was
ever to turn back or stop in the idle quest, here was the place and
time.
My Hither friends were behind the sea; to them I could return
before
it was too late, and here were the rough but honest Thither folk,
who
would doubtless let me live amongst them if that was to be my
fate.
One or other alternative were better than going to torture and
death.
"You seem to take the fate of that Hither girl of yours mightily to
heart,
stranger," quoth my hostess, with a touch of feminine jealousy,
as she
watched my hesitation. "Do you know anything of her?"
"Yes," I answered gloomily. "I have seen her once or twice away in Seth."
"Ah, that reminds me! When they brought her up here from the boats
to
dry her wet clothes, she cried and called in her grief for just such
a
one as you, saying he alone who struck down our men at her feast
could
rescue her--"
"What! Heru here in this room but yesterday! How did she look?
Was
she hurt? How had they treated her?"
My eagerness gave me away. The woman looked at me through her
half-shut
eyes a space, and then said, "Oh! sits the wind in THAT quarter?
So
you can love as well as eat. I must say you are well-conditioned
for
a spirit."
I got up and walked about the room a space, then, feeling very
friendless,
and knowing no woman was ever born who was not interested in
another
woman's loves, I boldly drew my hostess aside and told her about
Heru, and
that I was in pursuit of her, dwelling on the girl's gentle
helplessness,
my own hare-brained adventure, and frankly asking what sort of
a sovereign
Ar-hap was, what the customs of his court might be, and whether
she could
suggest any means, temporal or spiritual, by which he might be
moved to
give back Heru to her kindred.
Nor was my confidence misplaced. The woman, as I guessed, was
touched
somewhere back in her female heart by my melting love-tale, by my
anxiety
and Heru's peril. Besides, a ghost in search of a fairy
lady--and such
the slender folk of Seth were still considered to be by the
race which
had supplanted them--this was romance indeed. To be brief,
that good
woman proved invaluable.
She told me, firstly, that Ar-hap was believed to be away at
war,
"weekending" as was his custom, amongst rebellious tribes, and by
starting
at once up the water, I should very probably get to the town
before
he did. Secondly, she thought if I kept clear of private brawls
there
was little chance of my receiving injury, from the people at all
events,
as they were accustomed to strange visitors, and civil enough until
they
were fired by war. "Sickle cold, sword hot," was one of their
proverbs,
meaning thereby that in peaceful times they were lambs, however
lionlike
they might be in contest.
This was reassuring, but as to recovering the lady, that was
another
matter over which the good woman shook her head. It was ill
coming
between Ar-hap and his tribute, she said; still, if I wanted to see
Heru
once again, this was my opportunity, and, for the rest, that
chance,
which often favours the enamoured, must be my help.
Briefly, though I should probably have gone forward in any case out
of
sheer obstinacy, had it been to certain destruction, this better
aspect
of the situation hastened my resolution. I thanked the woman for
help,
and then the man outside was called in to advise as to the best
and
speediest way of getting within earshot of his hairy sovereignty,
the
monarch of Thitherland.
CHAPTER XVI
The Martian told me of a merchant boat with ten rowers which was going
up
to the capital in a couple of hours, and as the skipper was a friend
of his
they would no doubt take me as supercargo, thereby saving the
necessity of
passenger fees, which was obviously a consideration with me.
It was not
altogether a romantic approach to the dungeon of an imprisoned
beauty, but it
was practical, which is often better if not so pleasant.
So the offer was
gladly closed with, and curling myself in a rug of
foxskins, for I was tired
with much walking, sailors never being good
foot-gangers, I slept soundly
fill they came to tell me it was time to
go on board.
The vessel was more like a canal barge than anything else, lean and
long,
with the cargo piled in a ridge down the centre as farmers store
their
winter turnips, the rowers sitting on either side of this plying
oars
like dessert-spoons with long handles, while they chanted a
monotonous
cadence of monosyllables:
Oh, ho, oh,
Oh, ho, oh,
How high, how high.
and then again after a pause--
How high, how high
Oh, ho, oh,
Oh, ho, oh.
the which was infinitely sleep-provoking if not a refrain of a
high
intellectual order.
I shut my eyes as we pulled away from the wharfs of that nameless
emporium
and picked a passage through a crowd of quaint shipping,
wondering where I
was, and asking myself whether I was mentally rising
equal to my
extraordinary surroundings, whether I adequately appreciated
the immensity of
my remove from those other seas on which I had last
travelled, tiller-ropes
in hand, piloting a captain's galley from a wharf.
Good heavens, what would
my comrades on my ship say if they could see
me now steering a load of hairy
savages up one of those waterways which
our biggest telescopes magnify but to
the thickness of an indication?
No, I was not rising equal to the occasion,
and could not. The human
mind is of but limited capacity after all, and
such freaks of fortune
are beyond its conception. I knew I was where I
was, but I knew I
should probably never get the chance of telling of it, and
that no one
would ever believe me if I did, and I resigned myself to the
inevitable
with sullen acquiescence, smothering the wonder that might have
been
overwhelming in passing interests of the moment.
There is little to record of that voyage. We passed through a
fleet
of Ar-hap's warships, empty and at anchor in double line,
serviceable
half-decked cutters, built of solid timber, not pumpkin rind it
was
pleasant to notice, and then the town dropped away as we proceeded
up
a stream about as broad as the Hudson at its widest, and profusely
studded
with islands. This water was bitterly salt and joined another
sea on
the other side of the Martian continent. Yet it had a pronounced
flow
against us eastward, this tide running for three spring months and
being
followed, I learned, as ocean temperatures varied, by a flow in
the opposite
direction throughout the summer.
Just at present the current was so strong eastwards, the moisture
beaded
upon my rowers' tawny hides as they struggled against it, and
their
melancholy song dawdled in "linked sweetness long drawn out,"
while the swing
of their oars grew longer and longer. Truly it was
very hot, far hotter
than was usual for the season, these men declared,
and possibly this robbed
me of my wonted energy, and you, gentle reader,
of a description of all the
strange things we passed upon that highway.
Suffice it to say we spent a scorching afternoon, the greater part of
a
stifling night moored under a mud-bank with a grove of trees on top
from
which gigantic fire-flies hung as though the place were illuminated
for
a garden fete, and then, rowing on again in the comparatively cool
hours
before dawn, turned into a backwater at cock-crow.
The skipper of our cargo boat roused me just as we turned, putting
under
my sleepy nostrils a handful of toasted beans on a leaf, and a
small
cup full of something that was not coffee, but smelt as good as
that
matutinal beverage always does to the tired traveller.
Over our prow was an immense arch of foliage, and underneath a long
arcade
of cool black shadows, sheltering still water, till water and
shadow
suddenly ended a quarter of a mile down in a patch of brilliant
colour.
It was as peaceful as could be in the first morning light, and to
me
over all there was the inexpressible attraction of the unknown.
As our boat slipped silently forward up this leafy lane, a thin
white
"feather" in her mouth alone breaking the steely surface of the
stream,
the men rested from their work and began, as sailors will, to put
on
their shore-going clothes, the while they chatted in low tones over
the
profits of the voyage. Overhead flying squirrels were flitting to
and
fro like bats, or shelling fruit whereof the husks fell with a
pleasant
splash about us, and on one bank a couple of early mothers were
washing
their babies, whose smothered protests were almost the only sound
in
this morning world.
Another silent dip or two of the oars and the colour ahead
crystallised
into a town. If I said it was like an African village on a
large scale,
I should probably give you the best description in the fewest
words.
From the very water's edge up to the crown of a low hill inland,
extended
a mass of huts and wooden buildings, embowered and partly hidden
in
bright green foliage, with here and there patches of millet, or
some
such food plant, and the flowers that grow everywhere so abundantly
in
this country. It was all Arcadian and peaceful enough at the
moment,
and as we drew near the men were just coming out to the quays along
the
harbour front, the streets filling and the town waking to busy life.
A turn to the left through a watergate defended by towers of wood
and mud,
and we were in the city harbour itself; boats of many kinds
moored on every
side; quaint craft from the gulfs and bays of Nowhere,
full of unheard-of
merchandise, and manned by strange-faced crews, every
vessel a romance of
nameless seas, an epitome of an undiscovered world,
and every moment the
scene grew busier as the breakfast smoke arose,
and wharf and gangway set to
work upon the day's labours.
Our boat--loaded, as it turned out, with spoil from Seth--was run to
a
place of honour at the bottom of the town square, and was an object
of much
curiosity to a small crowd which speedily collected and lent a
hand with the
mooring ropes, the while chatting excitedly with the crew
about further
tribute and the latest news from overseas. At the same
time a swarthy
barbarian, whose trappings showed him to be some sort
of functionary, came
down to our "captain," much wagging of heads and
counting of notched sticks
taking place between them.
I, indeed, was apparently the least interesting item of the cargo,
and
this was embarrassing. No hero likes to be neglected, it is fatal
to
his part. I had said my prayers and steeled myself to all sorts of
fine
endurance on the way up, and here, when it came to the crisis,
no one was
anxious to play the necessary villain. They just helped
me ashore
civilly enough, the captain nodded his head at me, muttering
something in an
indifferent tone to the functionary about a ghost who
had wandered overseas
and begged a passage up the canal; the group about
the quay stared a little,
but that was all.
Once I remember seeing a squatting, life-size heathen idol hoisted
from a
vessel's hold and deposited on a sugar-box on a New York quay.
Some ribald
passer-by put a battered felt hat upon Vishnu's sacred curls,
and there the
poor image sat, an alien in an indifferent land, a sack
across its shoulders,
a "billycock" upon its head, and honoured at most
with a passing stare.
I thought of that lonely image as almost as lonely
I stood on the Thither
men's quay, without the support of friends or
heroics, wondering what to do
next.
However, a cheerful disposition is sometimes better than a
banking
account, and not having the one I cultivated the other, sunning
myself
amongst the bales for a time, and then, since none seemed
interested
in me, wandered off into the town, partly to satisfy my curiosity,
and
partly in the vague hope of ascertaining if my princess was really
here,
and, if possible, getting sight of her.
Meanwhile it turned hot with a supernatural, heavy sort of
heat
altogether, I overheard passersby exclaiming, out of the common,
and
after wandering for an hour through gardens and endless streets
of
thatched huts, I was glad enough to throw myself down in the shadow
of
some trees on the outskirts of the great central pile of buildings,
a
whole village in itself of beam-built towers and dwelling-place,
suggesting
by its superior size that it might actually be Ar-hap's palace.
Hotter and hotter it grew, while a curious secondary sunrise in the
west,
the like of which I never saw before seemed to add to the heat,
and heavier
and heavier my eyelids, till I dozed at last, and finally
slept uncomfortably
for a time.
Rousing up suddenly, imagine my surprise to see sitting, chin on
knees,
about a yard away, a slender girlish figure, infinitely out of
place
in that world of rough barbarians. Was it possible? Was I
dreaming?
No, there was no doubt about it, she was a girl of the Hither
folk,
slim and pretty, but with a wonderfully sad look in her gazelle
eyes,
and scarcely a sign of the indolent happiness of Seth in the pale
little
face regarding me so fixedly.
"Good gracious, miss," I said, still rubbing my eyes and doubting
my
senses, "have you dropped from the skies? You are the very last
person
I expected to see in this barbarian place."
"And you too, sir. Oh, it is lovely to see one so newly from
home,
and free-seeming--not a slave."
"How did you know I was from Seth?"
"Oh, that was easy enough," and with a little laugh she pointed to
a
pebble lying between us, on which was a piece of battered sweetmeat in
a
perforated bamboo box. Poor An had given me something just like that
in
a playful mood, and I had kept it in my pocket for her sake, being,
as you
will have doubtless observed, a sentimental young man, and now
I clapped my
hand where it should have been, but it was gone.
"Yes," said my new friend, "that is yours. I smelt the
sweetmeat
coming up the hill, and crossed the grass until I found you here
asleep.
Oh, it was lovely! I took it from your pocket, and white Seth
rose up
before my swimming eyes, even at the scent of it. I am Si, well
named,
for that in our land means sadness, Si, the daughter of Prince
Hath's
chief sweetmeat-maker, so I should know something of such stuff.
May I,
please, nibble a little piece?"
"Eat it all, my lass, and welcome. How came you here? But I can
guess.
Do not answer if you would rather not."
"Ay, but I will. It is not every day I can speak to ears so
friendly
as yours. I am a slave, chosen for my luckless beauty as last
year's
tribute to Ar-hap."
"And now?"
"And now the slave of Ar-hap's horse-keeper, set aside to make room for
a
fresher face."
"And do you know whose face that is?"
"Not I, a hapless maid sent into this land of horrors, to bear
ignominy
and stripes, to eat coarse food and do coarse work, the
miserable
plaything of some brute in semi-human form, with but the one
consolation
of dying early as we tribute-women always die. Poor comrade
in exile,
I only know her as yet by sympathy."
"What if I said it was Heru, the princess?"
The Martian girl sprang to her feet, and clasping her hands exclaimed,
"Heru, the Slender! Then the end comes, for it is written in our
books
that the last tribute is paid when the best is paid. Oh, how
splendid
if she gave herself of free will to this slavery to end it once for
all.
Was it so?"
"I think, Si, your princess could not have known of that tradition;
she
did not come willingly. Besides, I am come to fetch her back,
if it may
be, and that spoils the look of sacrifice."
"You to fetch her back, and from Ar-hap's arms? My word, Sir
Spirit,
you must know some potent charms; or, what is less likely, my
countrymen
must have amazingly improved in pluck since I left them.
Have you a
great army at hand?"
But I only shook my head, and, touching my sword, said that here was
the
only army coming to rescue Heru. Whereon the lady replied that
she
thought my valour did me more honour than my discretion. How did
I
propose to take the princess from her captors?
"To tell the truth, damsel, that is a matter which will have to be
left to
your invention, or the kindness of such as you. I am here
on a
hare-brained errand, playing knight-errant in a way that shocks
my common
sense. But since the matter has gone so far I will see it
through, or
die in the attempt. Your bully lord shall either give me
Heru, stock,
lock, and block, or hang me from a yard-arm. But I would
rather have
the lady. Come, you will help me; and, as a beginning,
if she is in
yonder shanty get me speech with her."
Poor Si's eyes dilated at the peril of the suggestion, and I saw
the
sluggish Martian nature at war against her better feelings. But
presently
the latter conquered. "I will try," she said. "What
matter a few stripes
more or less?" pointing to her rosy shoulders where red
scars crisscross
upon one another showed how the Martian girls fared in
Ar-hap's palace
when their novelty wore off. "I will try to help you;
and if they kill
me for it--why, that will not matter much." And
forthwith in that
blazing forenoon under the flickering shadow of the trees
we put our
heads together to see what we might do for Heru.
It was not much for the moment. Try what we would that afternoon, I
could
not persuade those who had charge of the princess to let me even
approach
her place of imprisonment, but Si, as a woman, was more
successful,
actually seeing her for a few moments, and managed to whisper in
her
ear that I had come, the Spirit-with-the-gold-buttons-down-his
front,
afterwards describing to me in flowing Martian imagery--but doubtless
not
more highly coloured than poor Heru's emotion warranted--how
delightedly
that lady had received the news.
Si also did me another service, presenting me to the porter's wife,
who
kept a kind of boarding-house at the gates of Ar-hap's palace for
gentlemen
and ladies with grievances. I had heard of lobbying before,
and the
presentation of petitions, though I had never indulged myself
in the pastime;
but the crowd of petitioners here, with petitions as
wild and picturesque as
their own motley appearances, was surely the
strangest that ever gathered
round a seat of supreme authority.
Si whispered in the ear of that good woman the nature of my errand,
with
doubtless some blandishment of her own; and my errand being one so
much
above the vulgar and so nearly touching the sovereign, I was at
once
accorded a separate room in the gate-house, whence I could look
down
in comparative peace on the common herd of suitors, and listen to
the
buzz of their invective as they practised speeches which I
calculated
it would take Ar-hap all the rest of his reign to listen to,
without
allowing him any time for pronouncing verdicts on them.
Here I made myself comfortable, and awaited the return of the sovereign
as
placidly as might be. Meanwhile fate was playing into my feeble hands.
I have said it was hot weather. At first this seemed but an outcome
of
the Martian climate, but as the hours went by the heat developed to
an
incredible extent. Also that red glare previously noted in the west
grew
in intensity, till, as the hours slipped by, all the town was staring
at
it in panting horror. I have seen a prairie on fire, luckily from
the far
side of a comfortably broad river, and have ridden through a
pine-forest
when every tree for miles was an uplifted torch, and pungent
yellow smoke
rolled down each corrie side in grey rivers crested with dancing
flame.
But that Martian glare was more sombre and terrible than either.
"What is it?" I asked of poor Si, who came out gasping to speak to me
by
the gate-house.
"None of us know, and unless the gods these Thither folk believe in
are
angry, and intend to destroy the world with yonder red sword in the
sky,
I cannot guess. Perhaps," she added, with a sudden flash of
inspiration,
"it comes by your machinations for Heru's help."
"No!"
"If not by your wish, then, in the name of all you love, set your
wish
against it. If you know any incantations suitable for the
occasion, oh,
practise them now at once, for look, even the very grass is
withering;
birds are dropping from trees; fishes, horribly bloated, are
beginning
to float down the steaming rills; and I, with all others, have a
nameless
dread upon me."
Hotter and hotter it grew, until about sunset the red blaze upon the
sky
slowly opened, and showed us for about half an hour, through the
opening a
lurid, flame-coloured meteor far out in space beyond; then
the cleft closed
again, and through that abominable red curtain came
the very breath of
Hades.
What was really happening I am not astronomer enough to say, though
on
cooler consideration I have come to the conclusion that our planet,
in going
out to its summer pastures in the remoter fields of space, had
somehow come
across a wandering lesser world and got pretty well singed
in passing.
This is purely my own opinion, and I have not yet submitted
it to the kindly
authorities of the Lick Observatory for verification.
All I can say for
certain is that in an incredibly short space of time
the face of the country
changed from green to sear, flowers drooped;
streams (there were not many in
the neighbourhood apparently) dried up;
fishes died; a mighty thirst there
was nothing to quench settled down on
man and beast, and we all felt that
unless Providence listened to the
prayers and imprecations which the whole
town set to work with frantic
zeal to hurl at it, or that abominable comet in
the sky sheered off on
another tack with the least possible delay, we should
all be reduced to
cinders in a very brief space of time.
CHAPTER XVII
The evening of the second day had already come, when Ar-hap arrived
home
after weekending amongst a tribe of rebellious subjects. But any
imposing
State entry which might have been intended was rendered impossible
by
the heat and the threat of that baleful world in the western sky.
It was a lurid but disordered spectacle which I witnessed from my room
in
the gate-house just after nightfall. The returning army had
apparently
fallen away exhausted on its march through the town; only some
three
hundred of the bodyguard straggled up the hill, limp and
sweating,
behind a group of pennons, in the midst of which rode a horseman
whose
commanding presence and splendid war harness impressed me, though I
could
not make out his features; a wild, impressionist scene of black
outlines,
tossing headgear, and spears glittering and vanishing in front of
the
red glare in the sky, but nothing more. Even the dry throats of
the
suitors in the courtyard hardly mustered a husky cry of welcome as
the
cavalcade trooped into the enclosure, and then the shadows enfolded
them
up in silence, and, too hot and listless to care much what the
morrow
brought forth, I threw myself on the bare floor, tossing and turning
in
a vain endeavour to sleep until dawn came once more.
A thin mist which fell with daybreak drew a veil over the horrible
glare
in the west for an hour or two, and taking advantage of the
slight
alleviation of heat, I rose and went into the gardens to enjoy a
dip
in a pool, making, with its surrounding jungle of flowers, one of
the
pleasantest things about the wood-king's forest citadel. The very
earth
seemed scorched and baking underfoot--and the pool was gone! It
had
run as dry as a limekiln; nothing remained of the pretty fall
which
had fed it but a miserable trickle of drops from the cascade
above.
Down beyond the town shone a gleam of water where the bitter
canal
steamed and simmered in the first grey of the morning, but up here
six
months of scorching drought could not have worked more havoc. The
very
leaves were dropping from the trees, and the luxuriant growths of
the
day before looked as though a simoon had played upon them.
I staggered back in disgust, and found some show of official
activity
about the palace. It was the king's custom, it appeared, to
hear
petitions and redress wrongs as soon after his return as
possible,
but today the ceremony was to be cut short as his majesty was going
out
with all his court to a neighbouring mountain to "pray away the
comet,"
which by this time was causing dire alarm all through the city.
"Heaven's own particular blessing on his prayers, my friend," I said
to
the man who told me this. "Unless his majesty's orisons are
fruitful,
we shall all be cooked like baked potatoes before nightfall, and
though
I have faced many kinds of death, that is not the one I would
choose
by preference. Is there a chance of myself being heard at the
throne?
Your peculiar climate tempts me to hurry up with my business and
begone
if I may."
"Not only may you be heard, sir, but you are summoned. The king
has
heard of you somehow, and sent me to find and bring you into his
presence
at once."
"So be it," I said, too hot to care what happened. "I have no
levee
dress with me. I lost my luggage check some time ago, but if you
will
wait outside I will be with you in a moment."
Hastily tidying myself up, and giving my hair a comb, as though just
off
to see Mr. Secretary for the Navy, or on the way to get a senator to
push
a new patent medicine for me, I rejoined my guide outside, and
together
we crossed the wide courtyard, entered the great log-built portals
of
Ar-hap's house, and immediately afterwards found ourselves in a
vast
hall dimly lit by rays coming in through square spaces under the
eaves,
and crowded on both sides with guards, courtiers, and
supplicants.
The heat was tremendous, the odour of Thither men and the
ill-dressed
hides they wore almost overpowering. Yet little I recked
for either,
for there at the top of the room, seated on a dais made of
rough-hewn
wood inlet with gold and covered with splendid furs, was Ar-hap
himself.
A fine fellow, swarthy, huge, and hairy, at any other time or place
I
could have given him due admiration as an admirable example of the
savage
on the borderland of grace and culture, but now I only glanced at him,
and
then to where at his side a girl was crouching, a gem of human
loveliness
against that dusky setting. It was Heru, my ravished
princess, and,
still clad in her diaphanous Hither robes, her face white with
anxiety,
her eyes bright as stars, the embodiment of helpless, flowery
beauty,
my heart turned over at sight of her.
Poor girl! When she saw me stride into the hall she rose swiftly
from
Ar-hap's side, clasped her pretty hands, and giving a cry of joy
would
have rushed towards me, but the king laid a mighty paw upon her,
under
which she subsided with a shiver as though the touch had blanched
all
the life within.
"Good morning, your majesty," I said, walking boldly up to the lower
step
of the dais.
"Good morning, most singular-looking vagrant from the Unknown,"
answered
the monarch. "In what way can I be of service to you?''
"I have come about that girl," I said, nodding to where Heru
lay
blossoming in the hot gloom like some night-flowering bud. "I do
not
know whether your majesty is aware how she came here, but it is a
highly
discreditable incident in what is doubtless your otherwise
blameless
reign. Some rough scullions intrusted with the duty of
collecting your
majesty's customs asked Prince Hath of the Hither people to
point out
the most attractive young person at his wedding feast, and the
prince
indicated that lady there at your side. It was a dirty trick,
and
all the worse because it was inspired by malice, which is the
meanest
of all weaknesses. I had the pleasure of knocking down some of
your
majesty's representatives, but they stole the girl away while I
slept,
and, briefly, I have come to fetch her back."
The monarch had followed my speech, the longest ever made in my life,
with
fierce, blinking eyes, and when it stopped looked at poor shrinking
Heru as
though for explanation, then round the circle of his awestruck
courtiers, and
reading dismay at my boldness in their faces, burst into
a guttural
laugh.
"I suppose you have the great and puissant Hither nation behind you
in
this request, Mr. Spirit?"
"No, I came alone, hoping to find justice here, and, if not, then
prepared
to do all I could to make your majesty curse the day your
servants maltreated
my friends."
"Tall words, stranger! May I ask what you propose to do if Ar-hap, in
his
own palace, amongst his people and soldiers, refuses to disgorge a
pretty
prize at the bidding of one shabby interloper--muddy and
friendless?"
"What should I do?"
"Yes," said the king, with a haughty frown. "What would you do?"
I do not know what prompted the reply. For a moment I was
completely
at a loss what to say to this very obvious question, and then all
on a
sudden, remembering they held me to be some kind of disembodied
spirit,
by a happy inspiration, fixing my eyes grimly on the king, I
answered,
"What would I do? Why, I WOULD HAUNT YOU!"
It may not seem a great stroke of genius here, but the effect on
the
Martian was instantaneous. He sat straight up, his hands tightened,
his
eyes dilated, and then fidgeting uneasily, after a minute he beckoned
to
an over-dressed individual, whom Heru afterwards told me was the
Court
necromancer, and began whispering in his ear.
After a minute's consultation he turned again, a rather
frightened
civility struggling in his face with anger, and said, "We have no
wish,
of course, stranger, to offend you or those who had the honour of
your
patronage. Perhaps the princess here was a little roughly handled,
and,
I confess, if she were altogether as reluctant as she seems, a
lesser
maid would have done as well. I could have wooed this one in
Seth,
where I may shortly come, and our espousals would possibly have lent,
in
the eyes of your friends, quite a cheerful aspect to my arrival. But
my
ambassadors have had no great schooling in diplomacy; they have
brought
Princess Heru here, and how can I hand her over to one I know nothing
of?
How do I know you are a ghost, after all? How do I know you have
anything
but a rusty sword and much impertinence to back your astounding
claim?"
"Oh, let it be just as you like," I said, calmly shelling and eating a
nut
I had picked up. "Only if you do not give the maid back, why,
then--"
And I stopped as though the sequel were too painful to put into
words.
Again that superstitious monarch of a land thronged with malicious
spirits
called up his magician, and, after they had consulted a moment,
turned more
cheerfully to me.
"Look here, Mister-from-Nowhere, if you are really a spirit, and have
the
power to hurt as you say, you will have the power also to go and
come between
the living and the dead, between the present and the past.
Now I will set you
an errand, and give you five minutes to do it in."
"Five minutes!" I exclaimed in incautious alarm.
"Five minutes," said the monarch savagely. "And if in that time
the
errand is not done, I shall hold you to be an impostor, an
impudent
thief from some scoundrel tribe of this world of mine, and will make
of
you an example which shall keep men's ears tingling for a century or
two."
Poor Heru dropped in a limp and lovely heap at that dire threat, while
I
am bound to say I felt somewhat uncomfortable, not unnaturally when
all
the circumstances are considered, but contented myself with
remarking,
with as much bravado as could be managed,
"And now to the errand, Ar-hap. What can I do for your majesty?"
The king consulted with the rogue at his elbow, and then nodding
and
chuckling in expectancy of his triumph, addressed me.
"Listen," he cried, smiting a huge hairy hand upon his knee, "listen,
and
do or die. My magician tells me it is recorded in his books that
once,
some five thousand years ago, when this land belonged to the Hither
people,
there lived here a king. It is a pity he died, for he seems to
have
been a jovial old fellow; but he did die, and, according to their
custom,
they floated him down the stream that flows to the regions of
eternal ice,
where doubtless he is at this present moment, caked up with
ten million of
his subjects. Now just go and find that sovereign for me,
oh you
bold-tongued dweller in other worlds!"
"And if I go how am I to know your ancient king, as you say, amongst
ten
million others?"
"That is easy enough," quoth Ar-hap lightly. "You have only to pass
to
and fro through the ice mountains, opening the mouths of the dead men
and
women you meet, and when you come to a middle-sized man with a fillet
on
his head and a jaw mended with gold, that will be he whom you look
for.
Bring me that fillet here within five minutes and the maid is
yours."
I started, and stared hard in amazement. Was this a dream? Was
the
royal savage in front playing with me? By what incredible chance
had
he hit upon the very errand I could answer to best, the very trophy
I
had brought away from the grim valley of ice and death, and had still
in
my shoulder-bag? No, he was not playing; he was staring hard in
turn,
joying in my apparent confusion, and clearly thinking he had
cornered
me beyond hope of redemption.
"Surely your mightiness is not daunted by so simple a task," scowled
the
sovereign, playing with the hilt of his huge hunting-knife, "and all
amongst
your friends' kindred too. On a hot day like this it ought to
be a
pleasant saunter for a spirit such as yourself."
"Not daunted," I answered coldly, turning on my heels towards the
door,
"only marvelling that your majesty's skull and your necromancer's
could
not between them have devised a harder task."
Out into the courtyard I went, with my heart beating finely in spite
of my
assumed indifference; got the bag from a peg in my sleeping-room,
and was
back before the log throne ere four minutes were gone.
"The old Hither king's compliments to your majesty," I said, bowing,
while
a deathly hush fell on all the assembly, "and he says though your
ancestors
little liked to hear his voice while alive, he says he has no
objection to
giving you some jaw now he is dead," and I threw down on
the floor the golden
circlet of the frozen king.
Ar-hap's eyes almost started from his head as, with his courtiers,
he
glared in silent amazement at that shining thing while the great
drops of
fear and perspiration trickled down his forehead. As for poor
Heru, she
rose like a spirit behind them, gazed at the jaw-bone of her
mythical
ancestor, and then suddenly realising my errand was done and
she apparently
free, held out her hands, and, with a tremulous cry,
would have come to
me.
But Ar-hap was too quick for her. All the black savage blood
swelled
into his veins as he swept her away with one great arm, and then with
his
foot gave the luckless jaw a kick that sent it glittering and
spinning
through the far doorway out into the sunshine.
"Sit down," he roared, "you brazen wench, who are so eager to leave
a
king's side for a nameless vagrant's care! And you, sir," turning
to
me, and fairly trembling with rage and dread, "I will not gainsay
that
you have done the errand set you, but it might this once be chance
that
got you that cursed token, some one happy turn of luck. I will
not
yield my prize on one throw of the dice. Another task you must
do.
Once might be chance, but such chance comes not twice."
"You swore to give me the maid this time."
"And why should I keep my word to a half-proved spirit such as you?"
"There are some particularly good reasons why you should," I
said,
striking an attitude which I had once seen a music-hall dramatist
take
when he was going to blast somebody's future--a stick with a star
on
top of it in his hand and forty lines of blank verse in his mouth.
The king writhed, and begged me with a sign to desist.
"We have no wish to anger you. Do us this other task and none will
doubt
that you are a potent spirit, and even I, Ar-hap, will listen to
you."
"Well, then," I answered sulkily, "what is it to be this time?"
After a minute's consultation, and speaking slowly as though conscious
of
how much hung on his words, the king said,
"Listen! My soothsayer tells me that somewhere there is a city lost
in
a forest, and a temple lost in the city, and a tomb lost in the
temple;
a city of ghosts and djins given over to bad spirits, wherefore all
human
men shun it by day and night. And on the tomb is she who was once
queen
there, and by her lies her crown. Quick! oh you to whom all
distances are
nothing, and who see, by your finer essence, into all times and
places.
Away to that city! Jostle the memories of the unclean things
that hide
in its shadows; ask which amongst them knows where dead Queen Yang
still
lies in dusty state. Get guides amongst your comrade
ghosts. Find Queen
Yang, and bring me here in five minutes the bloody
circlet from her hair."
Then, and then for the first time, I believed the planet was
haunted
indeed, and I myself unknowingly under some strange and
watchful
influence. Spirits, demons! Oh! what but some
incomprehensible power,
some unseen influence shaping my efforts to its ends,
could have moved
that hairy barbarian to play a second time into my hands
like this,
to choose from the endless records of his world the second of the
two
incidents I had touched in hasty travel through it? I was almost
overcome
for a minute; then, pulling myself together, strode forward
fiercely,
and, speaking so that all could hear me, cried, "Base king, who
neither
knows the capacities of a spirit nor has learned as yet to dread
its
anger, see! your commission is executed in a thought, just as
your
punishment might be. Heru, come here." And when the girl,
speechless
with amazement, had risen and slipped over to me, I straightened
her
pretty hair from her forehead, and then, in a way which would make
my
fortune if I could repeat it at a conjuror's table, whipped poor
Yang's
gemmy crown from my pocket, flashed its baleful splendour in the
eyes
of the courtiers, and placed it on the tresses of the first royal
lady
who had worn it since its rightful owner died a hundred years
before.
A heavy silence fell on the hall as I finished, and nothing was heard
for
a time save Heru sobbing on my breast and a thirsty baby somewhere
outside
calling to its mother for the water that was not to be had.
But presently on
those sounds came the fall of anxious feet, and a
messenger, entering the
doorway, approached the throne, laid himself out
flat twice, after which
obeisance he proceeded to remind the king of the
morning's ceremonial on a
distant hill to "pray away the comet," telling
his majesty that all was ready
and the procession anxiously awaiting him.
Whereon Ar-hap, obviously very well content to change the subject,
rose,
and, coming down from the dais, gave me his hand. He was a fine
fellow,
as I have said, strong and bold, and had not behaved badly for
an autocrat,
so that I gripped his mighty fist with great pleasure.
"I cannot deny, stranger," he said, "that you have done all that has
been
asked of you, and the maid is fairly yours. Yet before you take
away the
prize I must have some assurance of what you yourself will do with
her.
Therefore, for the moment, until this horrible thing in the sky
which
threatens my people with destruction has gone, let it be truce
between
us--you to your lodgings, and the princess back, unharmed, amongst
my
women till we meet again."
"But--"
"No, no," said the king, waving his hand. "Be content with
your
advantage. And now to business more important than ten thousand
silly
wenches," and gathering up his robes over his splendid war-gear the
wood
king stalked haughtily from the hall.
CHAPTER XVIII
Hotter and hotter grew that stifling spell, more and more languid man
and
beast, drier and drier the parching earth.
All the water gave out on the morning after I had bearded Ar-hap in
his
den, and our strength went with it. No earthly heat was ever like
it,
and it drank our vitality up from every pore. Water there was down
below
in the bitter, streaming gulf, but so noisome that we dared not even
bathe
there; here there was none but the faintest trickle. All
discipline was
at an end; all desire save such as was born of thirst.
Heru I saw as
often as I wished as she lay gasping, with poor Si at her feet,
in the
women's verandah; but the heat was so tremendous that I gazed at her
with
lack-lustre eyes, staggering to and fro amongst the courtyard
shadows,
without nerve to plot her rescue or strength to carry out anything
my
mind might have conceived.
We prayed for rain and respite. Ar-hap had prayed with a wealth
of
picturesque ceremonial. We had all prayed and cursed by turns,
but
still the heavens would not relent, and the rain came not.
At last the stifling heat and vapour reached an almost intolerable
pitch.
The earth reeked with unwholesome humours no common summer could
draw
from it, the air was sulphurous and heavy, while overhead the sky
seemed
a tawny dome, from edge to edge of angry clouds, parting now and
then
to let us see the red disc threatening us.
Hour after hour slipped by until, when evening was upon us, the
clouds
drew together, and thunder, with a continuous low rumble, began
to
rock from sky to sky. Fitful showers of rain, odorous and heavy,
but
unsatisfying, fell, and birds and beasts of the woodlands came
slinking
in to our streets and courtyards. Ever since the sky first
darkened
our own animals had become strangely familiar, and now here were
these
wild things of the woods slinking in for companionship, sagheaded
and
frightened. To me especially they came, until that last evening as
I
staggered dying about the streets or sat staring into the remorseless
sky
from the steps of Heru's prison house, all sorts of beasts drew
softly
in and crowded about, whether I sat or moved, all asking for the
hope
I had not to give them.
At another time this might have been embarrassing; then it seemed
pure
commonplace. It was a sight to see them slink in between the
useless
showers, which fell like hot tears upon us--sleek panthers with
lolling
tongues; russet-red wood dogs; bears and sloths from the dark arcades
of
the remote forests, all casting themselves down gasping in the
palace
shadows; strange deer, who staggered to the garden plots and lay
there
heaving their lives out; mighty boars, who came from the river
marshes
and silently nozzled a place amongst their enemies to die in!
Even the
wolves came off the hills, and, with bloodshot eyes and tongues
that
dripped foam, flung themselves down in my shadow.
All along the tall stockades apes sat sad and listless, and on
the
roof-ridges storks were dying. Over the branches of the trees,
whose
leaves were as thin as though we had had a six months' drought,
the
toucans and Martian parrots hung limp and fashionless like gaudy
rags,
and in the courtyard ground the corn-rats came up from their tunnels
in
the scorching earth to die, squeaking in scores along under the walls.
Our common sorrow made us as sociable as though I were Noah, and
Ar-hap's
palace mound another Ararat. Hour after hour I sat amongst all
these
lesser beasts in the hot darkness, waiting for the end. Every now
and
then the heavy clouds parted, changing the gloom to sudden fiery
daylight
as the great red eye in the west looked upon us through the crevice,
and,
taking advantage of those gleams, I would reel across to where, under
a
spout leading from a dried rivulet, I had placed a cup to collect
the
slow and tepid drops that were all now coming down the reed for
Heru.
And as I went back each time with that sickly spoonful at the
bottom
of the vessel all the dying beasts lifted their heads and
watched--the
thirsty wolves shambling after me; the boars half sat up and
grunted
plaintively; the panthers, too weak to rise, beat the dusty ground
with
their tails; and from the portico the blue storks, with trailing
wings,
croaked husky greeting.
But slower and slower came the dripping water, more and more
intolerable
the heat. At last I could stand it no longer. What
purpose did it serve
to lay gasping like this, dying cruelly without a hope
of rescue, when
a shorter way was at my side? I had not drank for a day
and a half.
I was past active reviling; my head swam; my reason was
clouded. No!
I would not stand it any longer. Once more I would
take Heru and poor
Si the cup that was but a mockery after all, then fix my
sword into the
ground and try what next the Fates had in store for me.
So once again the leathern mug was fetched and carried through
the
prostrate guards to where the Martian girl lay, like a withered
flower,
upon her couch. Once again I moistened those fair lips, while
my own
tongue was black and swollen in my throat, then told Si, who had
had
none all the afternoon, to drink half and leave half for Heru. Poor
Si
put her aching lips to the cup and tilted it a little, then passed
it
to her mistress. And Heru drank it all, and Si cried a few hot
tears
behind her hands, FOR SHE HAD TAKEN NONE, and she knew it was her
life!
Again picking a way through the courtyard, scarce noticing how the
beasts
lifted their heads as I passed, I went instinctively, cup in
hand, to the
well, and then hesitated. Was I a coward to leave Heru so?
Ought I not
to stay and see it out to the bitter end? Well, I would
compound with
Fate. I would give the malicious gods one more chance.
I would put the
cup down again, and until seven drops had fallen into
it I would wait.
That there might be no mistake about it, no sooner was
the mug in place under
the nozzle wherefrom the moisture beads collected
and fell with infinite
slowness, than my sword, on which I meant to throw
myself, was bared and the
hilt forced into a gaping crack in the ground,
and sullenly contented to
leave my fate so, I sat down beside it.
I turned grimly to the spout and saw the first drop fall, then
another,
and another later on, but still no help came. There was a long
rift
in the clouds now, and a glare like that from an open furnace door
was
upon me. I had noticed when I came to the spring how the comet
which
was killing us hung poised exactly upon the point of a distant
hill.
If he had passed his horrible meridian, if he was going from us, if
he
sunk but a hair's breadth before that seventh drop should fall, I
could
tell it would mean salvation.
But the fourth drop fell, and he was big as ever. The fifth drop
fell,
and a hot, pleasing nose was thrust into my hand, and looking down
I
saw a grey wolf had dragged herself across the court and was asking
with
eloquent eyes for the help I could not give. The sixth drop
gathered,
and fell; already the seventh was like a seedling pearl in its
place.
The dying wolf yanked affectionately at my hand, but I put her by
and
undid my tunic. Big and bright that drop hung to the spout lip;
another
minute and it would fall. A beautiful drop, I laughed, peering
closely at
it, many-coloured, prismatic, flushing red and pink, a tiny living
ruby,
hanging by a touch to the green rim above; enough! enough! The
quiver of
an eyelash would unhinge it now; and angry with the life I already
felt
was behind me, and turning in defiant expectation to the new to
come,
I rose, saw the red gleam of my sword jutting like a fiery spear
from
the cracking soil where I had planted it, then looked once more at
the
drop and glanced for the last time at the sullen red terror on the
hill.
Were my eyes dazed, my senses reeling? I said a space ago that
the
meteor stood exactly on the mountain-top and if it sunk a hair's
breadth
I should note it; and now, why, there WAS a flaw in its lower margin,
a
flattening of the great red foot that before had been round and
perfect.
I turned my smarting eyes away a minute,--saw the seventh drop
fall
with a melodious tingle into the cup, then back again,--there was
no
mistake--the truant fire was a fraction less, it had shrunk a
fraction
behind the hill even since I looked, and thereon all my life ran
back into
its channels, the world danced before me, and "Heru!" I shouted
hoarsely,
reeling back towards the palace, "Heru, 'tis well; the worst is
past!"
But the little princess was unconscious, and at her feet was poor
Si,
quite dead, still reclining with her head in her hands just as I
had
left her. Then my own senses gave out, and dropping down by them
I
remembered no more.
I must have lain there an hour or two, for when consciousness came
again
it was night--black, cool, profound night, with an inky sky low
down upon the
tree-tops, and out of it such a glorious deluge of rain
descending swiftly
and silently as filled my veins even to listen to.
Eagerly I shuffled away to
the porch steps, down them into the swimming
courtyard, and ankle-deep in the
glorious flood, set to work lapping
furiously at the first puddle, drinking
with gasps of pleasure, gasping
and drinking again, feeling my body filling
out like the thirsty steaming
earth below me. Then, as I still drank
insatiably, there came a gleam
of lightning out of the gloom overhead, a
brilliant yellow blaze, and by
it I saw a few yards away a panther drinking
at the same pool as myself,
his gleaming eyes low down like mine upon the
water, and by his side
two apes, the black water running in at their gaping
mouths, while out
beyond were more pools, more drinking animals.
Everything was drinking.
I saw their outlined forms, the gleam shining on wet
skins as though they
were cut out in silver against the darkness, each beast
steaming like a
volcano as the Heaven-sent rain smoked from his fevered hide,
all drinking
for their lives, heedless of aught else--and then came the
thunder.
It ran across the cloudy vault as though the very sky were being
ripped
apart, rolling in mighty echoes here and there before it died
away.
As it stopped, the rain also fell less heavily for a minute, and as I
lay
with my face low down I heard the low, contented lapping of
numberless
tongues unceasing, insatiable. Then came the lightning
again, lighting
up everything as though it were daytime. The twin black
apes were still
drinking, but the panther across the puddle had had enough; I
saw him
lift his grateful head up to the flare; saw the limp red tongue
licking
the black nose, the green eyes shining like opals, the water
dripping
in threads of diamonds from the hairy tag under his chin and every
tuft
upon his chest--then darkness again.
To and fro the green blaze rocked between the thunder crashes. It
struck
a house a hundred yards away, stripping every shingle from the roof
better
than a master builder could in a week. It fell a minute after on
a tall
tree by the courtyard gate, and as the trunk burst into white
splinters
I saw every leaf upon the feathery top turn light side up against
the
violet reflection in the sky beyond, and then the whole mass came
down
to earth with a thud that crushed the courtyard palings into
nothing
for twenty yards and shook me even across the square.
Another time I might have stopped to marvel or to watch, as I have
often
watched with sympathetic pleasure, the gods thus at play; but
tonight
there were other things on hand. When I had drunk, I picked up
an earthen
crock, filled it, and went to Heru. It was a rough
drinking-vessel for
those dainty lips, and an indifferent draught, being as
much mud as aught
else, but its effect was wonderful. At the first
touch of that turgid
stuff a shiver of delight passed through the drowsy
lady. At the second
she gave a sigh, and her hand tightened on my
arm. I fetched another
crockful, and by the flickering light rocking to
and fro in the sky,
took her head upon my shoulder, like a prodigal new come
into riches,
squandering the stuff, giving her to drink and bathing face and
neck
till presently, to my delight, the princess's eyes opened. Then
she
sat up, and taking the basin from me drank as never lady drank
before,
and soon was almost herself again.
I went out into the portico, there snuffing the deep, strong breath of
the
fragrant black earth receiving back into its gaping self what the last
few
days had taken from it, while quick succeeding thoughts of escape and
flight
passed across my brain. All through the fiery time we had just
had the
chance of escaping with the fair booty yonder had been present.
Without her,
flight would have been easy enough, but that was not worth
considering for a
moment. With her it was more difficult, yet, as I
had watched the
woodmen, accustomed to cool forest shades, faint under
the fiery glare of the
world above, to make a dash for liberty seemed
each hour more easy. I
had seen the men in the streets drop one by one,
and the spears fall from the
hands of guards about the pallisades; I had
seen messengers who came to and
fro collapse before their errands were
accomplished, and the forest women,
who were Heru's gaolers, groan and
drop across the thresholds of her prison,
until at length the way was
clear--a babe might have taken what he would from
that half-scorched town
and asked no man's leave. Yet what did it avail
me? Heru was helpless,
my own spirit burnt in a nerveless frame, and so
we stayed.
But with rain strength came back to both of us. The guards,
lying
about like black logs, were only slowly returning to consciousness;
the
town still slept, and darkness favoured; before they missed us in
the
morning light we might be far on the way back to Seth--a dangerous
way
truly, but we were like to tread a rougher one if we stayed. In
fact,
directly my strength returned with the cooler air, I made up my
mind
to the venture and went to Heru, who by this time was much
recovered.
To her I whispered my plot, and that gentle lady, as was only
natural,
trembled at its dangers. But I put it to her that no time
could be better
than the present: the storm was going over; morning would
"line the black
mantle of the night with a pink dawn of promise"; before any
one stirred
we might be far off, shaping a course by our luck and the stars
for her
kindred, at whose name she sighed. If we stayed, I argued, and
the king
changed his mind, then death for me, and for Heru the arms of that
surly
monarch, and all the rest of her life caged in these pallisades
amongst
the uncouth forms about us.
The lady gave a frightened little shiver at the picture, but after
a
moment, laying her head upon my shoulder, answered, "Oh, my
guardian
spirit and helper in adversity, I too have thought of tomorrow, and
doubt
whether that horror, that great swine who has me, will not invent
an
excuse for keeping me. Therefore, though the forest roads are
dreadful,
and Seth very far away, I will come; I give myself into your
hands.
Do what you will with me."
"Then the sooner the better, princess. How soon can you be prepared?"
She smiled, and stooping picked up her slippers, saying as she did so,
"I
am ready!"
There were no arrangements to be made. Every instant was of
value.
So, to be brief, I threw a dark cloak over the damsel's shoulders,
for
indeed she was clad in little more than her loveliness and the
gauziest
filaments of a Hither girl's underwear, and hand in hand led her
down
the log steps, over the splashing, ankle-deep courtyard, and into
the
shadows of the gateway beyond.
Down the slope we went; along towards the harbour, through a score
of
deserted lanes where nothing was to be heard but the roar of rain and
the
lapping of men and beasts, drinking in the shadows as though they
never
would stop, and so we came at last unmolested to the wharf. There
I
hid royal Seth between two piles of merchandise, and went to look for
a
boat suitable to our needs. There were plenty of small craft moored
to
rings along the quay, and selecting a canoe--it was no time to stand
on
niceties of property--easily managed by a single paddle, I brought
it
round to the steps, put in a fresh water-pot, and went for the
princess.
With her safely stowed in the prow, a helpless, sodden little morsel
of
feminine loveliness, things began to appear more hopeful and an
escape
down to blue water, my only idea, for the first time possible.
Yet I must
needs go and well nigh spoil everything by over-solicitude for my
charge.
Had we pushed off at once there can be no doubt my credit as a
spirit
would have been established for all time in the Thither capital, and
the
belief universally held that Heru had been wafted away by my
enchantment
to the regions of the unknown. The idea would have
gradually grown into
a tradition, receiving embellishments in succeeding
generations, until
little wood children at their mother's knees came to
listen in awe to the
story of how, once upon a time, the Sun-god loved a
beautiful maiden, and
drove his fiery chariot across the black night-fields
to her prison door,
scorching to death all who strove to gainsay him.
How she flew into his
arms and drove away before all men's eyes, in his red
car, into the west,
and was never seen again--the foresaid Sun-god being I,
Gulliver Jones,
a much under-paid lieutenant in the glorious United States
navy, with
a packet of overdue tailors' bills in my pocket, and nothing
lovable
about me save a partiality for meddling with other people's
affairs.
This is how it might have been, but I spoiled a pretty fairy story
and
changed the whole course of Martian history by going back at that
moment
in search of a wrap for my prize. Right on top of the steps was
a man
with a lantern, and half a glance showed me it was the harbour
master
met with on my first landing.
"Good evening," he said suspiciously. "May I ask what you are doing
on
the quay at such an hour as this?"
"Doing? Oh, nothing in particular, just going out for a little fishing."
"And your companion the lady--is she too fond of fishing?"
I swore between my teeth, but could not prevent the fellow walking to
the
quay edge and casting his light full upon the figure of the girl
below.
I hate people who interfere with other people's business!
"Unless I am very much mistaken your fishing friend is the Hither
woman
brought here a few days ago as tribute to Ar-hap."
"Well," I answered, getting into a nice temper, for I had been very
much
harrassed of late, "put it at that. What would you do if it were
so?"
"Call up my rain-drunk guards, and give you in charge as a thief
caught
meddling with the king's property."
"Thanks, but as my interviews with Ar-hap have already begun to
grow
tedious, we will settle this little matter here between ourselves
at
once." And without more to-do I closed with him. There was a
brief
scuffle and then I got in a blow upon his jaw which sent the
harbour
master flying back head over heels amongst the sugar bales and
potatoes.
Without waiting to see how he fared I ran down the steps, jumped on
board,
loosened the rope, and pushed out into the river. But my heart
was angry
and sore, for I knew, as turned out to be the case, that our secret
was
one no more; in a short time we should have the savage king in
pursuit,
and now there was nothing for it but headlong flight with only a
small
chance of getting away to distant Seth.
Luckily the harbour master lay insensible until he was found at dawn,
so
that we had a good start, and the moment the canoe passed from
the
arcade-like approach to the town the current swung her head
automatically
seaward, and away we went down stream at a pace once more
filling me
with hope.
CHAPTER XIX
All went well and we fled down the bitter stream of the Martian gulf at
a
pace leaving me little to do but guide our course just clear of snags
and
promontories on the port shore. Just before dawn, however, with a
thin
mist on the water and flocks of a flamingo-like bird croaking as
they flew
southward overhead, we were nearly captured again.
Drifting silently down on a rocky island, I was having a drink at
the
water-pitcher at the moment, while Heru, her hair beaded with
prismatic
moisture and looking more ethereal than ever, sat in the bows
timorously
inhaling the breath of freedom, when all on a sudden voices
invisible
in the mist, came round a corner. It was one of Ar-hap's
war-canoes
toiling up-stream. Heru and I ducked down into the haze like
dab-chicks
and held our breath.
Straight on towards us came the toiling ship, the dip of oars resonant
in
the hollow fog and a ripple babbling on her cutwater plainly
discernible.
Oh, oh!
Hoo, hoo!
How high, how high!"
sounded the sleepy song of the rowers till they were looming right
abreast
and we could smell their damp hides in the morning air. Then
they
stopped suddenly and some one asked,
"Is there not something like a boat away on the right?"
"It is nothing," said another, "but the lees of last night's beer
curdling
in your stupid brain."
"But I saw it move."
"That must have been in dreams."
"What is all that talking about?" growled a sleepy voice of authority
from
the stern.
"Bow man, sir, says he can see a boat."
"And what does it matter if he can? Are we to delay every time that
lazy
ruffian spying a shadow makes it an excuse to stop to yawn and
scratch?
Go on, you plankful of lubbers, or I'll give you something worth
thinking
about!" And joyfully, oh, so joyfully, we heard the sullen dip
of oars
commence again.
Nothing more happened after that till the sun at length shone on
the
little harbour town at the estuary mouth, making the masts of
fishing
craft clustering there like a golden reed-bed against the cool,
clean
blue of the sea beyond.
Right glad we were to see it, and keeping now in shadow of the banks,
made
all haste while light was faint and mist hung about to reach the
town,
finally pushing through the boats and gaining a safe hiding-place
without
hostile notice before it was clear daylight.
Covering Heru up and knowing well all our chances of escape lay
in
expedition, I went at once, in pursuance of a plan made during the
night,
to the good dame at what, for lack of a better name, must still
continue
to be called the fish-shop, and finding her alone, frankly told her
the
salient points of my story. When she learned I had "robbed the lion
of
his prey" and taken his new wife singlehanded from the dreaded Ar-hap
her
astonishment was unbounded. Nothing would do but she must look upon
the
princess, so back we went to the hiding-place, and when Heru knew
that
on this woman depended our lives she stepped ashore, taking the
rugged
Martian hand in her dainty fingers and begging her help so sweetly
that
my own heart was moved, and, thrusting hands in pocket, I went
aside,
leaving those two to settle it in their own female way.
And when I looked back in five minutes, royal Seth had her arms round
the
woman's neck, kissing the homely cheeks with more than imperial
fervour,
so I knew all was well thus far, and stopped expectorating at the
little
fishes in the water below and went over to them. It was
time! We had
hardly spoken together a minute when a couple of
war-canoes filled with
men appeared round the nearest promontory, coming down
the swift water
with arrow-like rapidity.
"Quick!" said the fishwife, "or we are all lost. Into your canoe
and
paddle up this creek. It runs out to the sea behind the town, and
at
the bar is my man's fishing-boat amongst many others. Lie hidden
there
till he comes if you value your lives." So in we got, and while
that
good Samaritan went back to her house we cautiously paddled through
a
deserted backwater to where it presently turned through low sandbanks
to
the gulf. There were the boats, and we hid the canoe and lay
down
amongst them till, soon after, a man, easily recognised as the
husband
of our friend, came sauntering down from the village.
At first he was sullen, not unreasonably alarmed at the danger into
which
his good woman was running him. But when he set eyes on Heru
he
softened immediately. Probably that thick-bodied fellow had never
seen
so much female loveliness in so small a bulk in all his life, and,
being a
man, he surrendered at discretion.
"In with you, then," he growled, "since I must needs risk my neck for
a
pair of runaways who better deserve to be hung than I do. In with
you
both into this fishing-cobble of mine, and I will cover you with
nets while I
go for a mast and sail, and mind you lie as still as logs.
The town is
already full of soldiers looking for you, and it will be
short shrift for us
all if you are seen."
Well aware of the fact and now in the hands of destiny, the princess and
I
lay down as bidden in the prow, and the man covered us lightly over
with one
of those fine meshed seines used by these people to catch the
little fish I
had breakfasted on more than once.
Materially I could have enjoyed the half-hour which followed, since
such
rest after exertion was welcome, the sun warm, the lapping of sea
on shingle
infinitely soothing, and, above all, Heru was in my arms!
How sweet and
childlike she was! I could feel her little heart beating
through her
scanty clothing, while every now and then she turned her
gazelle eyes to mine
with a trust and admiration infinitely alluring.
Yes! as far as that went I
could have lain there with that slip of
maiden royalty for ever, but the
fascination of the moment was marred
by the thought of our danger. What
was to prevent these new friends
giving us away? They knew we had no
money to recompense them for the
risk they were running. They were
poor, and a splendid reward, wealth
itself to them, would doubtless be theirs
if they betrayed us even by
a look. Yet somehow I trusted them as I
have trusted the poor before
with the happiest results, and telling myself
this and comforting Heru,
I listened and waited.
Minute by minute went by. It seemed an age since the fisherman
had
gone, but presently the sound of voices interrupted the sea's
murmur.
Cautiously stealing a glance through a chink imagine my feelings
on
perceiving half a dozen of Ar-hap's soldiers coming down the
beach
straight towards us! Then my heart was bitter within me, and I
tasted of
defeat, even with Heru in my arms. Luckily even in that
moment of agony
I kept still, and another peep showed the men were now
wandering about
rather aimlessly. Perhaps after all they did not know
of our nearness?
Then they took to horseplay, as idle soldiers will even in
Mars, pelting
each other with bits of wood and dead fish, and thereon I
breathed again.
Nearer they came and nearer, my heart beating fast as they
strolled
amongst the boats until they were actually "larking" round the one
next
to ours. A minute or two of this, and another footstep crunched on
the
pebbles, a quick, nervous one, which my instinct told me was that
of
our returning friend.
"Hullo old sprat-catcher! Going for a sail?" called out a
soldier,
and I knew that the group were all round our boat, Heru trembling
so
violently in my breast that I thought she would make the vessel shake.
"Yes," said the man gruffly.
"Let's go with him," cried several voices. "Here, old dried
haddock,
will you take us if we help haul your nets for you?"
"No, I won't. Your ugly faces would frighten all the fish out of
the
sea."
"And yours, you old chunk of dried mahogany, is meant to attract them
no
doubt."
"Let's tie him to a post and go fishing in his boat ourselves," some
one
suggested. Meanwhile two of them began rocking the cobble
violently
from side to side. This was awful, and every moment I
expected the net
and the sail which our friend had thrown down
unceremoniously upon us
would roll off.
"Oh, stop that," said the Martian, who was no doubt quite as well aware
of
the danger as we were. "The tide's full, the shoals are in the
bay--stop
your nonsense, and help me launch like good fellows."
"Well, take two of us, then. We will sit on this heap of nets as
quiet
as mice, and stand you a drink when we get back."
"No, not one of you," quoth the plucky fellow, "and here's my staff in
my
hand, and if you don't leave my gear alone I will crack some of your
ugly
heads."
"That's a pity," I thought to myself, "for if they take to fighting
it
will be six to one--long odds against our chances." There was indeed
a
scuffle, and then a yell of pain, as though a soldier had been hit
across
the knuckles; but in a minute the best disposed called out, "Oh,
cease
your fun, boys, and let the fellow get off if he wants to. You
know
the fleet will be down directly, and Ar-hap has promised
something
worth having to the man who can find that lost bit of crackling of
his.
It's my opinion she's in the town, and I for one would rather look
for
her than go haddock fishing any day."
"Right you are, mates," said our friend with visible relief.
"And,
what's more, if you help me launch this boat and then go to my missus
and
tell her what you've done, she'll understand, and give you the
biggest
pumpkinful of beer in the place. Ah, she will understand, and
bless your
soft hearts and heads while you drink it--she's a cute one is my
missus."
"And aren't you afraid to leave her with us?"
"Not I, my daisy, unless it were that a sight of your pretty face
might
give her hysterics. Now lend a hand, your accursed chatter has
already
cost me half an hour of the best fishing time."
"In with you, old buck!" shouted the soldiers; I felt the fisherman
step
in, as a matter of fact he stepped in on to my toes; a dozen hands
were
on the gunwales: six soldier yells resounded, it seemed, in my very
ears:
there was the grit and rush of pebbles under the keel: a sudden lurch
up
of the bows, which brought the fairy lady's honey-scented lips to
mine,
and then the gentle lapping of deep blue waters underneath us!
There is little more to be said of that voyage. We pulled until
out
of sight of the town, then hoisted sail, and, with a fair wind,
held
upon one tack until we made an island where there was a small colony
of
Hither folk.
Here our friend turned back. I gave him another gold button from
my
coat, and the princess a kiss upon either cheek, which he seemed to
like
even more than the button. It was small payment, but the best we
had.
Doubtless he got safely home, and I can but hope that Providence
somehow
or other paid him and his wife for a good deed bravely done.
Those islanders in turn lent us another boat, with a guide, who
had
business in the Hither capital, and on the evening of the second
day,
the direct route being very short in comparison, we were under
the
crumbling marble walls of Seth.
CHAPTER XX
It was like turning into a hothouse from a keen winter walk, our
arrival
at the beautiful but nerveless city after my life amongst the
woodmen.
As for the people, they were delighted to have their princess back,
but
with the delight of children, fawning about her, singing, clapping
hands, yet
asking no questions as to where she had been, showing no
appreciation of our
adventures--a serious offence in my eyes--and,
perhaps most important of all,
no understanding of what I may call the
political bearings of Heru's
restoration, and how far their arch enemies
beyond the sea might be inclined
to attempt her recovery.
They were just delighted to have the princess back, and that was the
end
of it. Theirs was the joy of a vast nursery let loose.
Flower
processions were organised, garlands woven by the mile, a
general
order issued that the nation might stay up for an hour after
bedtime,
and in the vortex of that gentle rejoicing Heru was taken from me,
and
I saw her no more, till there happened the wildest scene of all you
have
shared with me so patiently.
Overlooked, unthanked, I turned sulky, and when this mood, one I can
never
maintain for long, wore off, I threw myself into the dissipation
about me
with angry zeal. I am frankly ashamed of the confession, but
I was "a
sailor ashore," and can only claim the indulgences proper to
the
situation. I laughed, danced, drank, through the night; I drank
deep of
a dozen rosy ways to forgetfulness, till my mind was a great
confusion, full
of flitting pictures of loveliness, till life itself
was an illusive
pantomime, and my will but thistle-down on the folly
of the moment. I
drank with those gentle roisterers all through their
starlit night, and if we
stopped when morning came it was more from
weariness than virtue. Then
the yellow-robed slaves gave us the wine
of recovery--alas! my faithful An
was not amongst them--and all through
the day we lay about in sodden
happiness.
Towards nightfall I was myself again, not unfortunately with the
headache
well earned, but sufficiently remorseful to be in a vein to make
good
resolutions for the future.
In this mood I mingled with a happy crowd, all purposeless and cheerful
as
usual, but before long began to feel the influence of one of those
drifts, a
universal turning in one direction, as seaweed turns when
the tide changes,
so characteristic of Martian society. It was dusk,
a lovely soft velvet
dusk, but not dark yet, and I said to a yellow-robed
fairy at my side:
"Whither away, comrade? It is not eight bells yet. Surely we are
not
going to be put to bed so early as this?"
"No," said that smiling individual, "it is the princess. We are going
to
listen to Princess Heru in the palace square. She reads the globe on
the
terrace again tonight, to see if omens are propitious for her
marriage.
She MUST marry, and you know the ceremony has been unavoidably
postponed
so far."
"Unavoidably postponed?" Yes, Heaven wotted I was aware of the
fact.
And was Heru going to marry black Hath in such a hurry? And after
all
I had done for her? It was scarcely decent, and I tried to rouse
myself
to rage over it, but somehow the seductive Martian contentment with
any
fate was getting into my veins. I was not yet altogether sunk in
their
slothful acceptance of the inevitable, but there was not the
slightest
doubt the hot red blood in me was turning to vapid stuff such as
did duty
for the article in their veins. I mustered up a half-hearted
frown at
this unwelcome intelligence, turning with it on my face towards the
slave
girl; but she had slipped away into the throng, so the frown
evaporated,
and shrugging my shoulders I said to myself, "What does it
matter?
There are twenty others will do as well for me. If not one, why
then
obviously another, 'tis the only rational way to think, and at all
events
there is the magic globe. That may tell us something." And
slipping
my arm round the waist of the first disengaged girl--we were not
then,
mind you, in Atlantic City--I kissed her dimpling cheek
unreproached,
and gaily followed in the drift of humanity, trending with a
low hum of
pleasure towards the great white terraces under the palace
porch.
How well I knew them! It was just such an evening Heru had
consulted
Fate in the same place once before; how much had happened since
then!
But there was little time or inclination to think of those things
now.
The whole phantom city's population had drifted to one common
centre.
The crumbling seaward ramparts were all deserted; no soldier watch
was
kept to note if angry woodmen came from over seas; a soft wind blew
in
from off the brine, but told no tales; the streets were empty, and,
when as
we waited far away in the southern sky the earth planet presently
got up, by
its light Heru, herself again, came tripping down the steps
to read her
fate.
They had placed another magic globe under a shroud on a tripod for her.
It
stood within the charmed circle upon the terrace, and I was close
by,
although the princess did not see me.
Again that weird, fantastic dance commenced, the princess working
herself
up from the drowsiest undulations to a hurricane of emotion.
Then she
stopped close by the orb, and seized the corner of the web covering
it.
We saw the globe begin to beam with veiled magnificence at her touch.
Not an eye wavered, not a thought wandered from her in all that
silent
multitude. It was a moment of the keenest suspense, and just
when it
was at its height there came a strange sound of hurrying feet
behind
the outermost crowd, a murmur such as a great pack of wolves might
make
rushing through snow, while a soft long wail went up from the
darkness.
Whether Heru understood it or not I cannot say, but she hesitated
a
moment, then swept the cloth from the orb of her fate.
And as its ghostly, self-emitting light beamed up in the darkness
with
weird brilliancy, there by it, in gold and furs and war panoply,
huge,
fierce, and lowering, stood--AR-HAP HIMSELF!
Ay, and behind him, towering over the crouching Martians, blocking
every
outlet and street, were scores and hundreds of his men. Never
was
surprise so utter, ambush more complete. Even I was transfixed
with
astonishment, staring with open-mouthed horror at the splendid
figure
of the barbarian king as he stood aglitter in the ruddy light,
scowling
defiance at the throng around him. So silently had he come on
his errand
of vengeance it was difficult to believe he was a reality, and not
some
clever piece of stageplay, some vision conjured up by Martian
necromancy.
But he was good reality. In a minute comedy turned to tragedy.
Ar-hap
gave a sign with his hand, whereon all his men set up a terrible
warcry,
the like of which Seth had not heard for very long, and as far as I
could
make out in the half light began hacking and hewing my luckless
friends
with all their might. Meanwhile the king made at Heru, feeling
sure of
her this time, and doubtless intending to make her taste his
vengeance to
the dregs; and seeing her handled like that, and hearing her
plaintive
cries, wrath took the place of stupid surprise in me. I was
on my feet
in a second, across the intervening space, and with all my force
gave
the king a blow upon the jaw which sent even him staggering
backwards.
Before I could close again, so swift was the sequence of events
in
those flying minutes, a wild mob of people, victims and executioners
in
one disordered throng, was between us. How the king fared I know
not,
nor stopped to ask, but half dragging, half carrying Heru through
the
shrieking mob, got her up the palace steps and in at the great
doors,
which a couple of yellow-clad slaves, more frightened of the
barbarians
than thoughtful of the crowd without, promptly clapped to, and
shot
the bolts. Thus we were safe for a moment, and putting the
princess on a
couch, I ran up a short flight of stairs and looked out of a
front window
to see if there were a chance of succouring those in the palace
square.
But it was all hopeless chaos with the town already beginning to
burn
and not a show of fight anywhere which I could join.
I glared out on that infernal tumult for a moment or two in an agony
of
impotent rage, then turned towards the harbour and saw in the shine
of the
burning town below the ancient battlements and towers of Seth
begin to gleam
out, like a splendid frost work of living metal clear-cut
against the smooth,
black night behind, and never a show of resistance
there either. Ay,
and by this time Ar-hap's men were battering in
our gates with a big beam,
and somehow, I do not know how it happened,
the palace itself away on the
right, where the dry-as-dust library lay,
was also beginning to burn.
It was hopeless outside, and nothing to be done but to save Heru,
so down
I went, and, with the slaves, carried her away from the hall
through a
vestibule or two, and into an anteroom, where some yellow-girt
individuals
were already engaged in the suggestive work of tying up
palace plate in
bundles, amongst other things, alas! the great gold
love-bowl from which--oh!
so long ago--I had drawn Heru's marriage billet.
These individuals told me in
tremulous accents they had got a boat on a
secret waterway behind the palace
whence flight to the main river and so,
far away inland, to another smaller
but more peaceful city of their race
would be quite practical; and joyfully
hearing this news, I handed over
to them the princess while I went to look
for Hath.
And the search was not long. Dashing into the banquet-hall,
still
littered with the remains of a feast, and looking down its
deserted
vistas, there at the farther end, on his throne, clad in the
sombre
garments he affected, chin on hand, sedate in royal melancholy,
listening
unmoved to the sack of his town outside, sat the prince
himself. Strange,
gloomy man, the great dead intelligence of his race
shining in his face as
weird and out of place as a lonely sea beacon fading
to nothing before the
glow of sunrise, never had he appeared so mysterious as
at that moment.
Even in the heat of excitement I stared at him in amazement,
wishing in a
hasty thought the confusion of the past few weeks had given me
opportunity
to penetrate the recesses of his mind, and therefrom retell you
things
better worth listening to than all the incident of my
adventures.
But now there was no time to think, scarce time to act.
"Hath!" I cried, rushing over to him, "wake up, your majesty. The
Thither
men are outside, killing and burning!"
"I know it."
"And the palace is on fire. You can smell the reek even here."
"Yes."
"Then what are you going to do?"
"Nothing."
"My word, that is a fine proposition for a prince! If you care
nothing
for town or palace perhaps you will bestir yourself for Princess
Heru."
A faint glimmer of interest rose upon the alabaster calm of his face
at
that name, but it faded instantly, and he said quietly,
"The slaves will save her. She will live. I looked into the book
of
her fate yesterday. She will escape, and forget, and sit at
another
marriage feast, and be a mother, and give the people yet one more
prince
to keep the faint glimmer of our ancestry alive. I am
content."
"But, d--- it, man, I am not! I take a deal more interest in the
young
lady than you seem to, and have scoured half this precious planet
of
yours on her account, and will be hanged if I sit idly twiddling
my thumbs
while her pretty skin is in danger." But Hath was lost in
contemplation
of his shoe-strings.
"Come, sir," I said, shaking his majesty by the shoulder, "don't be
down
on your luck. There has been some rivalry between us, but never
mind
about that just now. The princess wants you. I am going to
save both
her and you, you must come with her."
"No."
"But you SHALL come."
"No!"
By this time the palace was blazing like a bonfire and the uproar
outside
was terrible. What was I to do? As I hesitated the arras
at the further
end of the hall was swept aside, a disordered mob of slaves
bearing
bundles and dragging Heru with them rushing down to the door near
us.
As Heru was carried swiftly by she stretched her milk-white arms
towards
the prince and turned her face, lovely as a convolvulus flower even
in
its pallor, upon him.
It was a heart-moving appeal from a woman with the heart of a child,
and
Hath rose to his feet while for a moment there shone a look of
responsible
manhood in his eyes. But it faded quickly; he bowed slowly
as though he
had received an address of condolence on the condition of
his empire, and the
next moment the frightened slaves, stumbling under
their burdens, had swept
poor Heru through the doorway.
I glanced savagely round at the curling smoke overhead, the red
tendrils
of fire climbing up a distant wall, and there on a table by us was
a
half-finished flask of the lovely tinted wine of forgetfulness. If
Hath
would not come sober perhaps he might come drunk.
"Here," I cried, "drink to tomorrow, your majesty, a sovereign toast
in
all ages, and better luck next time with these hairy gentlemen
battering
at your majesty's doors," and splashing out a goblet full of the
stuff
I handed it to him.
He took it and looked rather lovingly into the limpid pool,
then
deliberately poured it on the step in front of him, and throwing
the
cup away said pleasantly,
"Not tonight, good comrade; tonight I drink a deeper draught of
oblivion
than that,--and here come my cup-bearers."
Even while he spoke the palace gates had given way; there was a
horrible
medley of shrieks and cries, a quick sound of running feet; then
again the
arras lifted and in poured a horde of Ar-hap's men-at-arms.
The moment
they caught sight of us about a dozen of them, armed with bows,
drew the
thick hide strings to their ears and down the hall came a ravening
flight
of shafts. One went through my cap, two stuck quivering in the
throne,
and one, winged with owl feather, caught black Hath full in the
bosom.
He had stood out boldly at the first coming of that onset, arms crossed
on
breast, chin up, and looking more of a gentleman than I had ever seen
him
look before; and now, stricken, he smiled gravely, then without
flinching,
and still eyeing his enemies with gentle calm, his knees unlocked,
his
frame trembled, then down he went headlong, his red blood running
forth
in rivulets amongst the wine of oblivion he had just poured out.
There was no time for sentiment. I shrugged my shoulders, and
turning
on my heels, with the woodmen close after me, sprang through the
near
doorway. Where was Heru? I flew down the corridor by which
it seemed
she had retreated, and then, hesitating a moment where it divided
in two,
took the left one. This to my chagrin presently began to trend
upwards,
whereas I knew Heru was making for the river down below.
But it was impossible to go back, and whenever I stopped in those
deserted
passages I could hear the wolflike patter of men's feet upon my
trail.
On again into the stony labyrinths of the old palace, ever
upwards,
in spite of my desire to go down, until at last, the pursuers off
the
track for a moment, I came to a north window in the palace wall,
and,
hot and breathless, stayed to look out.
All was peace here; the sky a lovely lavender, a promise of coming
morning
in it, and a gold-spangled curtain of stars out yonder on the
horizon.
Not a soul moved. Below appeared a sheer drop of a hundred
feet into
a moat winding through thickets of heavy-scented convolvulus
flowers
to the waterways beyond. And as I looked a skiff with half a
dozen
rowers came swiftly out of the darkness of the wall and passed like
a
shadow amongst the thickets. In the prow was all Hath's wedding
plate,
and in the stern, a faint vision of unconscious loveliness, lay
Heru!
Before I could lift a finger or call out, even if I had had a mind to
do
so, the shadow had gone round a bend, and a shout within the palace
told me I
was sighted again.
On once more, hotly pursued, until the last corridor ended in two
doors
leading into a half-lit gallery with open windows at the further
end.
There was a wilderness of lumber down the sides of the great
garret,
and now I come to think of it more calmly I imagine it was
Hath's
Lost Property Office, the vast receptacle where his slaves
deposited
everything lazy Martians forgot or left about in their daily
life.
At that moment it only represented a last refuge, and into it I
dashed,
swung the doors to and fastened them just as the foremost of
Ar-hap's
men hurled themselves upon the barrier from outside.
There I was like a rat in a trap, and like a rat I made up my mind
to
fight savagely to the end, without for a moment deceiving myself
as to what
that end must be. Even up there the horrible roar of
destruction was
plainly audible as the barbarians sacked and burned
the ancient town, and I
was glad from the bottom of my heart my poor
little princess was safely out
of it. Nor did I bear her or hers the
least resentment for making off
while there was yet time and leaving me
to my fate--anything else would have
been contrary to Martian nature.
Doubtless she would get away, as Hath had
said, and elsewhere drop a
few pearly tears and then over her sugar-candy and
lotus-eating forget
with happy completeness--most blessed gift! And
meanwhile the foresaid
barbarians were battering on my doors, while over
their heads choking
smoke was pouring in in ever-increas-ing volumes.
In burst the first panel, then another, and I could see through the
gaps a
medley of tossing weapons and wild faces without. Short shrift
for me
if they came through, so in the obstinacy of desperation I set
to work to
pile old furniture and dry goods against the barricade.
And as they yelled
and hammered outside I screamed back defiance from
within, sweating, tugging,
and hauling with the strength of ten men,
piling up the old Martian lumber
against the opening till, so fierce was
the attack outside, little was left
of the original doorway and nothing
between me and the beseigers but a
rampart of broken woodwork half seen
in a smother of smoke and flames.
Still they came on, thrusting spears and javelins through every
crevice
and my strength began to go. I threw two tables into a gap, and
brained
a besieger with a sweetmeat-seller's block and smothered another,
and
overturned a great chest against my barricade; but what was the
purpose
of it all? They were fifty to one and my rampart quaked before
them.
The smoke was stifling, and the pains of dissolution in my
heart.
They burst in and clambered up the rampart like black ants. I
looked
round for still one more thing to hurl into the breach. My eyes
lit on
a roll of carpet: I seized it by one corner meaning to drag it to
the
doorway, and it came undone at a touch.
That strange, that incredible pattern! Where in all the
vicissitudes
of a chequered career had I seen such a one before? I
stared at it in
amazement under the very spears of the woodmen in the red
glare of Hath's
burning palace. Then all on a sudden it burst upon me
that IT WAS THE
ACCURSED RUG, the very one which in response to a careless
wish had swept
me out of my own dear world, and forced me to take as wild a
journey
into space as ever fell to a man's lot since the universe was
made!
And in another second it occurred to me that if it had brought me
hither
it might take me hence. It was but a chance, yet worth trying
when all
other chances were against me. As Ar-hap's men came shouting
over the
barricade I threw myself down upon that incredible carpet and cried
from
the bottom of my heart,
"I wish--I wish I were in New York!"
Yes!
A moment of thrilling suspense and then the corners lifted as though
a
strong breeze were playing upon them. Another moment and they
had
curled over like an incoming surge. One swift glance I got at the
smoke
and flames, the glittering spears and angry faces, and then fold
upon
fold, a stifling, all-enveloping embrace, a lift, a sense of
super-human
speed--and then forgetfulness.
When I came to, as reporters say, I was aware the rug had ejected me
on
solid ground and disappeared, forever. Where was I! It was
cool, damp,
and muddy. There were some iron railings close at hand and
a street
lamp overhead. These things showed clearly to me, sitting on a
doorstep
under that light, head in hand, amazed and giddy--so amazed that
when
slowly the recognition came of the incredible fact my wish was
gratified
and I was home again, the stupendous incident scarcely appealed to
my
tingling senses more than one of the many others I had lately
undergone.
Very slowly I rose to my feet, and as like a discreditable reveller
as
could be, climbed the steps. The front door was open, and entering
the
oh, so familiar hall a sound of voices in my sitting-room on the
right
caught my ear.
"Oh no, Mrs. Brown," said one, which I recognised at once as my
Polly's,
"he is dead for certain, and my heart is breaking. He would
never,
never have left me so long without writing if he had been alive,"
and
then came a great sound of sobbing.
"Bless your kind heart, miss," said the voice of my landlady in
reply,
"but you don't know as much about young gentlemen as I do. It is
not
likely, if he has gone off on the razzle-dazzle, as I am sure he
has,
he is going to write every post and tell you about it. Now you go
off
to your ma at the hotel like a dear, and forget all about him till
he
comes back--that's MY advice."
"I cannot, I cannot, Mrs. Brown. I cannot rest by day or sleep
by
night for thinking of him; for wondering why he went away so
suddenly,
and for hungering for news of him. Oh, I am miserable.
Gully! Gully!
Come to me," and then there were sounds of troubled
footsteps pacing to
and fro and of a woman's grief.
That was more than I could stand. I flung the door open, and,
dirty,
dishevelled, with unsteady steps, advanced into the room.
"Ahem!" coughed Mrs. Brown, "just as I expected!"
But I had no eyes for her. "Polly! Polly!" I cried, and that
dear
girl, after a startled scream and a glance to make sure it was
indeed
the recovered prodigal, rushed over and threw all her weight of
dear,
warm, comfortable womanhood into my arms, and the moment after
burst
into a passion of happy tears down my collar.
"Humph!" quoth the landlady, "that is not what BROWN gets when he
forgets
his self. No, not by any means."
But she was a good old soul at heart, and, seeing how matters stood,
with
a parting glance of scorn in my direction and a toss of her head,
went out of
the room, and closed the door behind her.
Need I tell in detail what followed? Polly behaved like an angel,
and
when in answer to her gentle reproaches I told her the outlines of
my
marvellous story she almost believed me! Over there on the
writing-desk
lay a whole row of the unopened letters she had showered upon me
during
my absence, and amongst them an official one. We went and opened
it
together, and it was an intimation of my promotion, a much better
"step"
than I had ever dared to hope for.
Holding that missive in my hand a thought suddenly occurred to me.
"Polly dear, this letter makes me able to maintain you as you ought
to be
maintained, and there is still a fortnight of vacation for me.
Polly, will
you marry me tomorrow?"
"No, certainly not, sir."
"Then will you marry me on Monday?"
"Do you truly, truly want me to?"
"Truly, truly."
"Then, yes," and the dear girl again came blushing into my arms.
While we were thus the door opened, and in came her parents who
were
staying at a neighbouring hotel while inquiries were made as to
my
mysterious absence. Not unnaturally my appearance went a long way
to
confirm suspicions such as Mrs. Brown had confessed to, and, after
they
had given me cold salutations, Polly's mother, fixing gold glasses
on
the bridge of her nose and eyeing me haughtily therefrom, observed,
"And now that you ARE safely at home again, Lieutenant Gulliver Jones,
I
think I will take my daughter away with me. Tomorrow her father
will
ascertain the true state of her feelings after this unpleasant
experience,
and subsequently he will no doubt communicate with you on the
subject."
This very icily.
But I was too happy to be lightly put down.
"My dear madam," I replied, "I am happy to be able to save her father
that
trouble. I have already communicated with this young lady as to
the
state of her feelings, and as an outcome I am delighted to be able
to tell
you we are to be married on Monday."
"Oh yes, Mother, it is true, and if you do not want to make me the
most
miserable of girls again you will not be unkind to us."
In brief, that sweet champion spoke so prettily and smoothed things
so
cleverly that I was "forgiven," and later on in the evening allowed
to
escort Polly back to her hotel.
"And oh!" she said, in her charmingly enthusiastic way when we were
saying
goodnight, "you shall write a book about that extraordinary story
you told me
just now. Only you must promise me one thing."
"What is it?"
"To leave out all about Heru--I don't like that part at all." This
with
the prettiest little pout.
"But, Polly dear, see how important she was to the narrative. I
cannot
quite do that."
"Then you will say as little as you can about her?"
"No more than the story compels me to."
"And you are quite sure you like me much the best, and will not go
after
her again?"
"Quite sure."
The compact was sealed in the most approved fashion; and here,
indulgent
reader, is the artless narrative that resulted--an incident so
incredible
in this prosaic latter-day world that I dare not ask you to
believe,
and must humbly content myself with hoping that if I fail to
convince
yet I may at least claim the consolation of having amused you.